Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n aaron_n according_a sacrifice_n 15 3 7.2780 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A20672 Of the visible sacrifice of the Church of God· The first part. VVritten by Anonymus Eremita Doughty, Thomas, fl. 1618-1638. 1638 (1638) STC 7072.4; ESTC S116351 164,395 307

There are 44 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o especial_o consider_v that_o these_o his_o word_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o manifest_a and_o no_o where_o else_o we_o find_v that_o our_o saviour_n either_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n or_o command_v any_o of_o his_o follower_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n but_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o the_o christian_a world_n now_o for_o 1600._o year_n have_v general_o believe_v that_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n our_o lord_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o after_o a_o unbloudy_a manner_n as_o in_o part_n i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n and_o shall_v prove_v more_o at_o large_a hereafter_o 6._o neither_o do_v this_o hinder_a the_o fulfil_n of_o this_o oath_n of_o god_n in_o our_o saviour_n for_o that_o he_o be_v not_o visible_o now_o upon_o earth_n to_o execute_v priesthood_n according_a officer_n he_o who_o command_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v donn_v be_v say_v rather_o to_o do_v it_o then_o his_o officer_n to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n for_o when_o a_o thing_n be_v donn_v by_o commandment_n of_o another_o who_o have_v lawful_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o command_v and_o virtue_n to_o execute_v what_o be_v command_v he_o who_o command_v be_v rather_o say_v to_o do_v the_o thing_n command_v than_o his_o officer_n or_o minister_n who_o do_v it_o by_o his_o authority_n power_n and_o command_v so_o our_o saviour_n command_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o give_v his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o they_o do_v it_o by_o his_o authority_n power_n and_o command_v he_o may_v be_v rather_o say_v to_o give_v his_o body_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o offer_v sacrifice_n than_o bishop_n or_o priest_n who_o do_v it_o but_o as_o his_o officer_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o power_n authority_n and_o command_v 7._o the_o scripture_n suppose_v melchisedech_n know_v melchisedech_n priesthood_n suppose_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v well_o know_v priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v well_o know_v many_o time_n say_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n yet_o of_o melchisedech_n priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n we_o have_v in_o the_o scripture_n no_o more_o but_o melchisedech_n bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o he_o be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a or_o and_o he_o be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a gen._n 14._o 18._o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o offer_v it_o unto_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n see_v that_o not_o where_o else_o there_o be_v make_v any_o mention_n of_o any_o thing_n he_o can_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n whereby_o his_o order_n may_v be_v know_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o bring_v they_o forth_o only_o to_o feed_v abraham_n and_o his_o soldier_n who_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o victual_n and_o spoil_n of_o 4._o king_n and_o give_v the_o tithe_n thereof_o unto_o melchisedech_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n and_o than_o it_o have_v binn_n needle_n to_o add_v that_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o how_o he_o bless_a abraham_n 8._o second_o the_o ancient_a jew_n affirm_v that_o melchisedech_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n wine_n the_o ancient_a jew_n affirm_v that_o melchisedech_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o rabbi_n samuel_n upon_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o gen._n say_v he_o set_v forth_o the_o act_n of_o priesthood_n for_o he_o be_v sacrifice_v bread_n and_o wine_n to_o god_n rabbi_n phinees_n upon_o the_o 28._o of_o numbres_n say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n all_o sacrifice_n shall_v cease_v but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v not_o cease_v as_o it_o be_v say_v gen._n 14._o for_o melchisedech_n the_o king_n messiah_n shall_v be_v exempt_v from_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 110._o psal_n thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n rabbi_n moses_n hadarsan_n upon_o the_o 14._o of_o gen._n say_v rabbi_n the_o son_n of_o enachinam_n say_v that_o this_o melchisedech_n be_v sem_fw-mi the_o son_n of_o no_o but_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o that_o he_o bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o this_o he_o show_v that_o he_o teach_v the_o act_n of_o his_o priesthood_n which_o be_v to_o sacrifice_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o psal_n our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o philo_n judaus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o abraham_n towards_o the_o end_n say_v that_o melchisedech_n sacrifice_v in_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o victory_n of_o abraham_n and_o galatinus_n in_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o catholic_n verity_n and_o genebrard_n in_o his_o chronologie_n upon_o melchisedech_n cite_v certain_a rabbi_n who_o translate_v these_o word_n of_o the_o 14._o of_o gen._n and_o 18._o ver._n thus_o melchisedech_n offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n the_o catholic_n church_n translate_v they_o bring_v forth_o bread_n wine_n and_o assign_v the_o cause_n say_v for_o he_o be_v priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v that_o this_o be_v his_o office_n to_o offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o theodorus_n bibliander_n a_o protestant_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o 89._o leaf_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o general_a receive_v opinion_n among_o the_o ancient_a jew_n that_o as_o the_o come_n of_o the_o bless_a messiah_n all_o legal_a sacrifice_n be_v to_o cease_v and_o that_o only_o the_o sacrifice_n they_o call_v theoda_n of_o thancksgiving_n praise_n and_o confession_n be_v to_o continue_v with_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v in_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o melchisedech_n king_n of_o salem_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o abraham_n bring_v forth_o bread_n and_o wine_n 9_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o wine_n the_o ancient_a father_n affirm_v that_o melchisedech_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n melchisedech_n sacrifice_v in_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o fulfil_v the_o type_n in_o melchisedech_n sacrifice_v by_o offer_v up_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epist._n saying_n our_o lord_n jesus_n offer_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o that_o melchisedech_n do_v that_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n that_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n s._n ambrose_n upon_o the_o 109._o psal_n say_v christ_n by_o the_o mystery_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v make_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n s._n hierome_n in_o his_o 17._o epist_n to_o marcelia_n chapter_n 2._o say_v melchisedech_n then_o in_o type_n of_o christ_n offer_v wine_n and_o bread_n and_o dedicate_v the_o christian_a mystery_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o with_o these_o father_n do_v agree_v s._n augustin_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psal_n say_v in_o the_o old_a law_n you_o know_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n in_o the_o slaughter_n of_o beast_n and_o that_o in_o a_o mystery_n for_o then_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o the_o faithful_a and_o those_o who_o read_v the_o scripture_n know_v be_v not_o institute_v which_o sacrifice_n be_v now_o dilate_a over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n propound_v therefore_o before_o your_o eye_n two_o sacrifice_n that_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n and_o this_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n etc._n etc._n the_o sacrifice_n of_o aaron_n be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n enter_v in_o his_o place_n and_o the_o jew_n adber_v unto_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n embrace_v not_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o so_o lose_v christ_n thus_o s._n augustin_n 10._o of_o this_o opinion_n where_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n abundant_o cite_v by_o coceius_fw-la in_o his_o 2._o tome_fw-mi and_o 6._o book_n insomuch_o that_o doctor_n fulk_n a_o puritan_n in_o the_o 99_o leaf_n of_o his_o book_n
especial_o command_v that_o we_o shall_v come_v unto_o it_o with_o concord_n and_o burn_a charity_n thus_o s._n chrisostome_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o end_n why_o christ_n our_o lord_n institute_v a_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a law_n be_v not_o only_o to_o preserve_v in_o christian_n the_o worship_n of_o latria_n towards_o god_n and_o the_o commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o to_o maintain_v a_o perfect_a union_n among_o they_o 11._o man_n on_o the_o one_o side_n be_v oblige_v by_o the_o debt_n of_o his_o creation_n conservation_n redemption_n and_o other_o benefit_n to_o honour_v and_o love_n god_n above_o all_o thing_n and_o his_o neighbour_n for_o god_n sake_n as_o himself_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v abundant_o testify_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o god_n sacrifice_n be_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o say_a scripture_n do_v witness_v and_o experience_n do_v daily_o manifest_a unto_o we_o that_o the_o cogitation_n of_o man_n heart_n be_v bend_v unto_o evil_n at_o all_o time_n and_o to_o forget_v these_o his_o obligation_n and_o institute_v of_o life_n unless_o he_o by_o some_o public_a act_n or_o daily_a exercise_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n and_o keep_v to_o the_o practice_n thereof_o for_o this_o cause_n god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n have_v ordain_v that_o a_o particular_a visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v daily_o use_v in_o his_o church_n as_o a_o public_a exercise_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n unto_o he_o a_o daily_a visible_a adoration_n of_o he_o with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o a_o continual_a renew_n of_o our_o love_n peace_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o ourselves_o thereby_o to_o preserve_v in_o we_o the_o honour_n and_o obligation_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o god_n and_o the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o so_o to_o live_v together_o in_o unity_n peace_n and_o charity_n whilst_o god_n a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v school_n of_o other_o thing_n &_o not_o of_o the_o worship_n due_a unto_o god_n we_o remain_v upon_o earth_n and_o after_o death_n to_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o enjoy_v the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o we_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n 12._o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o absurd_a that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o kingdom_n here_o upon_o earth_n there_o shall_v be_v visible_a school_n and_o public_a daily_a exercise_n of_o thing_n of_o lesser_a moment_n and_o that_o of_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_v of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n public_a worship_n of_o latria_n solemn_a commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o we_o and_o the_o sacred_a union_n of_o our_o heart_n with_o he_o and_o among_o ourselves_o wherein_o consist_v our_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a welfare_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o practice_n more_o than_o in_o naked_a word_n only_o which_o either_o man_n of_o diverse_a nation_n who_o speak_v different_a language_n or_o the_o unlearned_a can_v not_o understand_v neither_o will_v word_n only_o without_o other_o visible_a action_n be_v sufficient_a to_o teach_v the_o sacrifice_n the_o necessity_n of_o sacrifice_n vulgar_a common_a people_n the_o practice_n dignity_n excellency_n and_o eminency_n of_o these_o sacred_a thing_n as_o we_o find_v by_o experience_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v institute_v public_a school_n where_o all_o man_n not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o in_o deed_n may_v see_v the_o adoration_n due_a only_o to_o god_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o man_n heart_n the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o union_n with_o god_n and_o among_o ourselves_o daily_o practise_v such_o as_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v the_o sacred_a temple_n and_o church_n but_o also_o that_o these_o exercise_n shall_v be_v set_v f●●th_n with_o great_a solemnity_n under_o solemn_a visible_a know_a sign_n common_a to_o all_o that_o all_o in_o every_o city_n town_n and_o village_n may_v comply_v with_o these_o their_o obligation_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n which_o be_v the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n i_o speak_v of_o who_o practice_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n be_v so_o appropriate_v unto_o this_o use_n that_o wheresoever_o we_o shall_v find_v either_o among_o christian_n or_o infidel_n any_o company_n of_o man_n serious_o attend_v to_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n upon_o a_o altar_n we_o present_o know_v that_o they_o be_v adore_v some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a with_o the_o honour_n due_a only_o unto_o god_n and_o colleague_v in_o unity_n of_o religion_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o as_o be_v manifest_a by_o experience_n 13._o and_o because_o that_o the_o offering_n of_o a_o particular_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n upon_o a_o altar_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n unto_o those_o end_n before_o rehearse_v therefore_o to_o communicate_v as_o protestant_n thing_n to_o communicate_v and_o not_o of_o thing_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n a_o profane_a thing_n and_o puritan_n now_o do_v and_o not_o of_o host_n or_o victimes_o first_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o a_o altar_n be_v and_o be_v by_o the_o scripture_n account_v a_o work_n of_o the_o son_n of_o belial_n 1._o king_n 2._o 2._o and_o a_o exceed_o great_a sin_n 1._o king_n 2._o 17._o because_o say_v the_o scripture_n they_o distract_a man_n from_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o hinder_v they_o not_o only_o from_o the_o public_a practice_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o visible_a adoration_n of_o he_o with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n which_o be_v due_a only_a to_o he_o but_o obliterated_a the_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n for_o we_o who_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o infringe_v the_o solemn_a practice_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n between_o man_n and_o god_n and_o of_o man_n among_o themselves_o for_o which_o cause_n s._n paul_n also_o command_v visible_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o communion_n say_v as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o chalice_n you_o shall_v show_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o come_v 1._o cor._n 11._o 26._o who_o die_v offer_v up_o himself_o in_o a_o visible_a sacrifice_n as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v to_o conclude_v prayer_n as_o affirm_v s._n john_n damascen_n in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n orthodoxae_fw-la fidei_fw-la be_v a_o elevation_n of_o mind_n to_o god_n which_o visible_a sacrifice_n do_v not_o only_o teach_v and_o express_v as_o word_n do_v thing_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v heretofore_o but_o also_o add_v to_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o god_n a_o gift_n give_v or_o offer_v to_o god_n according_a to_o his_o command_n sayinge_v thou_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o my_o sight_n empty_a exod._n 23._o 15._o and_o such_o a_o superexcellent_a gift_n as_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o only_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v and_o withal_o a_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o ourselves_o to_o god_n accord_v to_o the_o earnest_a exhortation_n of_o s._n paul_n say_v i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o you_o exhibit_v your_o body_n a_o live_a host_n holy_a please_v to_o god_n your_o reasonable_a sacrifice_n rom._n 21._o 1._o whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o due_a offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n do_v prayer_n the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v excellent_a prayer_n not_o only_o teach_v we_o to_o pray_v as_o we_o ought_v but_o also_o be_v in_o itself_o the_o most_o complete_a prayer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o call_v the_o public_a office_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o shall_v further_o declare_v in_o his_o place_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n this_o be_v not_o only_o sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o institution_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n but_o also_o the_o necessity_n and_o cause_n why_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v in_o the_o church_n oft_o god_n and_o use_v among_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n write_v law_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o fruit_n or_o benefit_n we_o receive_v by_o they_o chap._n iii_o all_o the_o gentill_n and_o heathen_a people_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o their_o suppose_a go_n 1._o the_o offering_n up_o of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n peace_n offer_v of_o sacrifice_n necessary_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o peace_n unto_o god_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o after_o they_o be_v offer_v be_v esteem_v a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a
heathen_a people_n do_v not_o only_o eat_v of_o thing_n offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n unto_o their_o god_n but_o also_o estemeed_o that_o sacrifice_n the_o union_n among_o the_o gentile_n by_o communicate_v of_o sacrifice_n those_o who_o do_v eat_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n have_v union_n peace_n and_o society_n with_o they_o and_o their_o god_n or_o idol_n therefore_o both_o in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o in_o the_o new_a the_o faithful_a be_v prohibit_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o meat_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o idol_n exod._n 34._o 25._o act._n 15._o 29._o and_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 21._o where_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o faithful_a you_o cannott_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o table_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n whereupon_o nectarius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o his_o oration_n idolatry_n julian_n craft_n to_o bring_v the_o christian_n to_o idolatry_n which_o he_o make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o lent_n relate_v that_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la desirous_a to_o compel_v the_o catholic_n of_o constantinople_n to_o a_o exterior_a kind_n of_o participation_n with_o idolator_n and_o infidel_n cause_v all_o the_o bread_n and_o meat_n with_o be_v public_o to_o be_v sell_v in_o constantinople_n to_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n unto_o the_o god_n that_o so_o say_v he_o they_o may_v all_o be_v compel_v to_o eat_v of_o meat_n immolate_a to_o idol_n or_o else_o perish_v with_o hunger_n whereupon_o the_o christian_n seek_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o theodorus_n the_o martyr_n to_o know_v what_o they_o may_v do_v to_o save_v the_o faithful_a from_o perish_v of_o hunger_n divine_a answer_n be_v make_v that_o instead_o of_o bread_n they_o shall_v use_v boil_a wheat_n for_o their_o meat_n which_o the_o rich_a sort_n for_o a_o whole_a week_n together_o bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a so_o julian_n be_v overcome_v by_o the_o continency_n and_o constancy_n of_o the_o christian_n command_v that_o pure_a meat_n with_o out_o any_o spott_n shall_v be_v bring_v again_o to_o the_o market_n 6._o and_o not_o only_o the_o scripture_n and_o ecclesiastical_a history_n make_v mention_n how_o the_o heaten_v honour_v their_o god_n with_o sacrifice_n and_o after_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n to_o maintain_v friendship_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o god_n but_o also_o heathen_a author_n themselves_o as_o homer_n virgil_n plutark_o macrobius_n and_o valerius_n maximus_n who_o write_v that_o in_o the_o feast_n which_o the_o roman_a septemviri_fw-la make_v in_o the_o capitol_n to_o jupiter_n which_o be_v after_o sacrifice_v jupiter_n be_v invite_v to_o supper_n in_o a_o bed_n and_o juno_n and_o minerva_n sit_v in_o chair_n to_o signify_v that_o eat_v the_o meat_n with_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n they_o communicate_v and_o feast_v with_o their_o go_n and_o the_o same_o do_v testify_v plutark_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v that_o there_o be_v no_o pleasant_a life_n according_a to_o epicurus_n say_v king_n &_o prince_n keep_v great_a cheer_n in_o their_o royal_a court_n and_o make_v certain_a royal_a and_o public_a feast_n for_o all_o comer_n but_o those_o which_o they_o hold_v in_o the_o sacred_a temple_n at_o sacrifice_n and_o solemnity_n of_o the_o gentile_n the_o solemn_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o gentile_n god_n perform_v with_o fragrant_a perfume_n and_o odoriferous_a incense_n where_o it_o seem_v that_o man_n approach_v near_o unto_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o god_n and_o think_v they_o even_o touch_v they_o and_o be_v conversant_a with_o they_o in_o all_o honour_n and_o reverence_n such_o feast_n yield_v a_o more_o rare_a joy_n and_o singular_a delight_n than_o any_o other_o by_o the_o assure_a hope_n and_o full_a persuasion_n that_o god_n be_v there_o present_a propitious_a favourable_a and_o gracious_a and_o that_o he_o accept_v in_o good_a part_n the_o honour_n and_o service_n donn_v unto_o he_o so_o plutark_o and_o virgil_n in_o the_o 8._o of_o his_o eneides_n affirm_v the_o same_o of_o aeneas_n and_o his_o trojan_n say_v then_o choose_v stripling_n and_o the_o priest_n who_o yet_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n straight_o before_o they_o set_v oxen_v broil_v entrail_n f●ll_o with_o manchet_n fine_a basket_n and_o serve_v they_o of_o the_o pure_a wine_n aeneas_n and_o his_o trojan_n take_v for_o cheer_n the_o chine_n and_o hallow_a inward_o of_o a_o steer_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o infidel_n and_o heathen_a people_n to_o take_v the_o flesh_n with_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o their_o god_n from_o the_o altar_n of_o their_o idol_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o table_n of_o man_n that_o those_o who_o offer_v may_v eat_v of_o it_o with_o their_o friend_n and_o such_o as_o be_v invite_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o isralits_n who_o as_o be_v set_v down_o more_o particular_o in_o the_o 1._o book_n of_o king_n and_o 1._o chapter_n offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o after_o communicate_v of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o all_o heathen_n and_o gentill_n who_o be_v not_o atheist_n or_o epicure_n and_o either_o deny_v not_o god_n or_o god_n or_o he_o or_o their_o providence_n over_o mankind_n offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o some_o suppose_a god_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o thereby_o to_o give_v divine_a honour_n unto_o their_o god_n and_o maintaynunitie_n peace_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o go_n chap._n iu._n of_o all_o the_o visible_a outward_a action_n of_o man_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v chief_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n 1._o in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n there_o be_v some_o particular_a visible_a and_o know_v sign_n of_o dignity_n honour_n and_o worship_n belong_v only_o unto_o the_o king_n or_o supreme_a governor_n as_o they_o be_v king_n magistrate_n some_o visible_a know_v sign_n of_o honour_n due_a unto_o supreme_a magistrate_n or_o supreme_a governor_n which_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o other_o under_o penalty_n of_o treason_n and_o death_n as_o sceptre_n or_o crown_n or_o the_o like_a and_o god_n not_o only_o be_v king_n of_o king_n revel_v 9_o 24._o and_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n revel_v 1._o 5._o but_o also_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n revel_v 3._o 11._o and_o have_v dominion_n over_o all_o 1._o chronic._n 29._o 12._o in_o reason_n he_o must_v needs_o have_v some_o one_o particular_a external_a visible_a know_a sign_n of_o adoration_n honour_n and_o worship_v due_a only_o unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o supreme_a alone_o some_o visible_a honour_n due_a unto_o god_n alone_o sovereign_n by_o all_o man_n which_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n thereby_o public_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o god_n and_o to_o practice_v together_o their_o submission_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o visible_o to_o adore_v he_o with_o that_o divine_a worship_n with_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o which_o honour_n and_o worship_n under_o penalty_n of_o treason_n against_o his_o divine_a majesty_n and_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a death_n may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o creature_n subject_a or_o vassal_n of_o he_o otherwise_o there_o shall_v be_v less_o providence_n use_v in_o provide_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o visible_a public_a honour_n worship_n and_o dignity_n of_o god_n among_o man_n than_o there_o be_v for_o the_o mean_a king_n prince_n or_o public_a governor_n of_o any_o private_a city_n upon_o earth_n which_o be_v absurd_a whereupon_o we_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o particular_a exterior_a visible_a know_a sign_n whereby_o man_n do_v or_o ought_v public_o and_o visible_o to_o acknowleg_n god_n for_o their_o lord_n god_n and_o chief_a good_a and_o public_o and_o visible_o preserve_v in_o they_o the_o honour_n dignity_n and_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o as_o their_o lord_n god_n creator_n conserver_n and_o happy_a life_n etc._n etc._n 2._o that_o this_o particular_a external_a visible_a know_a sign_n be_v the_o visible_a sacrifice_n i_o speak_v of_o which_o s._n augustine_n describe_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o sacred_a god_n sacrifice_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n visible_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o our_o first_o chapter_n god_n himself_o do_v witness_v say_v he_o that_o sacrifice_v to_o god_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o to_o our_o lord_n only_o exod._n 22._o 20._o for_o which_o cause_n s._n paul_n reprehend_v the_o gentile_n for_o their_o idolatry_n say_v they_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o incorruptible_a god_n rom._n 1._o 23._o and_o how_o do_v they_o change_v it_o by_o take_v away_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a visible_a
pour_v out_o their_o vow_n before_o god_n with_o perfume_n and_o drink_v offering_n thus_o s._n cyprian_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n beleve_v visible_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n by_o the_o law_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n 5._o second_o by_o the_o defect_n which_o every_o one_o find_v in_o himself_o natural_a reason_n do_v dictate_v unto_o every_o one_o that_o he_o be_v subject_a unto_o some_o high_a superior_a who_o help_n he_o have_v need_n of_o which_o superior_a call_v he_o what_o you_o will_v be_v god_n and_o the_o same_o natural_a reason_n which_o tell_v man_n other_o reason_n tell_v man_n that_o he_o must_v honour_v god_n with_o such_o a_o honour_n as_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o other_o that_o he_o have_v a_o god_n unto_o who_o he_o be_v subject_a and_o of_o who_o help_n he_o have_v need_n tell_v he_o also_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o honour_v this_o god_n with_o the_o high_a kind_n of_o honour_n that_o can_v be_v give_v he_o upon_o earth_n and_o acknowledge_v this_o his_o subjection_n by_o such_o inward_a affection_n and_o outward_a sign_n or_o symbol_n as_o neither_o be_v nor_o aught_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o other_o which_o be_v the_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n we_o speak_v of_o which_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 4._o and_o 5._o chapter_n neither_o be_v nor_o yet_o ever_o be_v offer_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o some_o true_a or_o suppose_v god_n manner_n nature_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v after_o one_o manner_n 6._o three_o aristotle_n in_o his_o 7._o book_n of_o his_o moral_n to_o eudemon_n say_v that_o nature_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v always_o or_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v after_o one_o manner_n and_o fortune_n or_o accident_n of_o these_o which_o be_v seldom_o alike_o which_o we_o find_v true_a by_o experience_n in_o all_o natural_a and_o accidental_a thing_n as_o in_o the_o natural_a and_o accidental_a thing_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n planet_n and_o element_n all_o who_o natural_a motion_n be_v constant_a and_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o accidental_a variable_a and_o changeable_a mutability_n accident_n the_o cause_n of_o mutability_n and_o see_v that_o all_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n both_o faithful_a and_o infidel_n who_o firm_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o god_n and_o his_o or_o their_o providence_n over_o mankind_n have_v all_o general_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n what_o reasonable_a man_n can_v doubt_v that_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n &_o mercy_n towards_o mankind_n have_v give_v unto_o mankind_n a_o natural_a inclination_n propension_n and_o instinct_n to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o he_o thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o his_o god_n sacrifice_v corruption_n of_o nature_n the_o cause_n why_o all_o offer_v not_o sacrifice_v and_o express_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o hart_n unto_o he_o and_o that_o the_o defect_n of_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n in_o those_o who_o use_v it_o not_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n 7._o four_o we_o have_v prove_v in_o our_o former_a chapter_n that_o people_n of_o all_o nation_n epicure_n and_o they_o the_o impossibility_n of_o all_o man_n to_o agree_v to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n have_v not_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n dictate_v it_o unto_o they_o atheist_n only_o except_v who_o deny_v god_n or_o god_n and_o his_o or_o their_o providence_n over_o mankind_n offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o true_a or_o suppose_v god_n and_o the_o people_n of_o all_o nation_n who_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n can_v never_o meet_v together_o to_o make_v a_o accord_n or_o agreement_n to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n no_o nor_o yet_o the_o head_n or_o king_n of_o all_o nation_n can_v meet_v together_o to_o make_v this_o general_a accord_n that_o they_o will_v all_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n or_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v all_o meet_v together_o yet_o speak_v diverse_a language_n and_o be_v of_o diverse_a disposition_n and_o humour_n they_o will_v never_o have_v all_o agree_v but_o suppose_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v all_o concur_v together_o in_o one_o assembly_n and_o agree_v to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n yet_o their_o diverse_a disposition_n nature_n interest_n reason_n of_o state_n etc._n etc._n will_v not_o have_v permit_v they_o to_o have_v continue_v for_o so_o many_o thousand_o year_n in_o this_o their_o agreement_n of_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n without_o alteration_n or_o change_v if_o the_o dictamen_fw-la of_o their_o conscience_n law_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n write_v in_o every_o man_n hart_n have_v not_o persuade_v or_o compel_v they_o unto_o it_o as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n in_o the_o contract_n or_o agreement_n which_o be_v make_v but_o among_o some_o few_o nation_n in_o other_o matter_n from_o which_o they_o change_v and_o fall_v from_o in_o few_o year_n 8._o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o the_o offering_n nature_n the_o consent_n of_o nation_n be_v from_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n of_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n be_v due_a unto_o he_o by_o the_o instinct_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o as_o cicero_n a_o heathen_a man_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o tusculan_a question_n well_o observe_v in_o every_o thing_n the_o consent_n of_o nation_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n the_o consent_n of_o nation_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o nature_n wheruppon_o s._n augustin_n in_o his_o 49._o epistle_n and_o 5._o question_n say_v those_o who_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o both_o sacrifice_n the_o pagan_n not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o offer_v sacrifice_n testament_n do_v not_o blame_v the_o pagan_n or_o heathen_a people_n for_o that_o they_o build_v temple_n ordain_v priest_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n because_o these_o thing_n be_v teach_v they_o by_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o for_o that_o they_o do_v exhibit_v those_o thing_n unto_o idol_n and_o devil_n thus_o s._n augustine_n with_o who_o agree_v s._n thomas_n 2._o 2._o quest_n 85._o be_v 1._o saying_n the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v by_o nature_n sacrifice_n by_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o say_v he_o it_o proceed_v from_o natural_a reason_n that_o man_n shall_v use_v some_o sensible_a thing_n and_o offer_v they_o to_o god_n in_o sign_n or_o token_n of_o due_a subjection_n and_o honour_n as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v who_o offer_v some_o thing_n unto_o their_o temporal_a lord_n in_o acknowledgement_n or_o manifestation_n of_o submission_n unto_o their_o dominion_n and_o this_o be_v that_o we_o call_v sacrifice_n so_o s._n thomas_n 9_o and_o from_o this_o instinct_n of_o nature_n proceed_v sacrifice_n the_o division_n of_o tongue_n make_v no_o division_n of_o sacrifice_n from_o reason_n which_o we_o call_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o after_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tower_n of_o babel_n and_o after_o that_o god_n have_v so_o confound_v the_o tongue_n of_o all_o man_n that_o they_o can_v not_o one_o understand_v another_o to_o consult_v together_o what_o kind_n of_o religion_n they_o shall_v follow_v or_o after_o what_o manner_n or_o way_n they_o shall_v honour_v god_n or_o god_n they_o all_o agree_v that_o god_n or_o god_n true_a or_o false_a be_v to_o be_v honour_v and_o adore_v with_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o testimony_n of_o all_o ancient_a time_n yet_o be_v they_o divide_v and_o scatter_v over_o the_o earth_n into_o 55._o or_o as_o other_o write_v into_o 72._o distinct_a nation_n and_o tongue_n so_o that_o it_o have_v be_v impossible_a for_o they_o all_o to_o agree_v in_o general_a in_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n unto_o their_o true_a or_o suppose_a god_n have_v not_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n dictamen_fw-la of_o their_o conscience_n and_o wisdom_n give_v from_o above_o unto_o all_o mankind_n in_o their_o creation_n direct_v they_o 10._o and_o this_o dictamen_fw-la and_o light_n of_o nature_n to_o atheistical_a temple_n without_o sacrifice_n atheistical_a offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o their_o true_a or_o suppose_a god_n or_o god_n be_v so_o insert_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n that_o plutark_o a_o heathen_a man_n teach_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v that_o there_o be_v no_o pleasant_a life_n according_a to_o epicurus_n say_v a_o temple_n without_o a_o sacred_a feast_n or_o sacrifice_n be_v atheistical_a impious_a and_o irreligious_a so_o constant_o be_v sacrifice_n believe_v to_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n and_o
of_o god_n who_o live_v after_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o their_o communion_n to_o represent_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n past_a to_o apply_v his_o merit_n unto_o they_o who_o be_v slay_v as_o s._n john_n say_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n apoc._n 13._o 8._o and_o as_o many_o as_o be_v save_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o write_v la_o or_o shall_v be_v save_v in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n all_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o therefore_o if_o in_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n and_o write_v la_o they_o have_v need_n of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o apply_v the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n unto_o they_o so_o likewise_o have_v we_o in_o the_o new_a la_o see_v that_o the_o old_a la_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o new_a 1._o cor._n 10._o 6._o whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o 20._o book_n against_o faustus_n say_v at_o this_o present_a christian_n do_v celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n pass_v upon_o the_o cross_n by_o the_o most_o holy_a oblation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 8._o the_o chief_a act_n whereby_o our_o saviour_n redeem_v we_o be_v his_o offering_n or_o give_v himself_o to_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n according_a to_o his_o word_n say_v i_o yield_v my_o life_n for_o my_o sheep_n joh._n 10._o 15._o away_v sacrifice_n take_v away_v the_o commemoration_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n be_v also_o take_v away_v against_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v us._n tit._n 2._o 14._o wherefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v take_v away_o all_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o his_o church_n he_o have_v leave_v in_o deed_n or_o action_n no_o express_a commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n 9_o god_n almighty_a threaten_v it_o as_o a_o great_a punishment_n to_o be_v deprive_v of_o sacrifice_n be_v threaten_v as_o a_o punishment_n plague_n to_o the_o pleople_n of_o israel_n to_o take_v away_o from_o among_o they_o for_o their_o sin_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n say_v many_o day_n shall_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n sit_v without_o king_n and_o without_o prince_n and_o without_o sacrifice_n and_o without_o altar_n etc._n etc._n and_o after_o this_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v return_v and_o shall_v seek_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o his_o goodness_n in_o the_o last_o day_n osee_n 34._o where_o we_o see_v that_o god_n himself_o account_v it_o a_o great_a plague_n for_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o be_v without_o sacrifice_n and_o altar_n as_o they_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v until_o a_o little_a before_o the_o last_o day_n according_a to_o this_o prophecy_n and_o at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o shall_v seek_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o his_o goodness_n and_o become_v christian_n and_o have_v sacrifice_n and_o altar_n wherefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n shall_v have_v plant_v his_o new_a la_o and_o testament_n without_o any_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n or_o altar_n the_o new_a la_o have_v be_v a_o la_o and_o testament_n of_o great_a anger_n wrath_n and_o punishment_n than_o be_v the_o old_a law_n and_o not_o a_o law_n of_o great_a grace_n and_o favour_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o promise_n say_v christ_n come_v to_o preach_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o our_o lord_n psal_n 71._o 1._o luc._n 4._o 19_o insomuch_o as_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o this_o time_n of_o grace_n say_v behold_v now_o be_v the_o time_n acceptable_a behold_v now_o the_o day_n of_o salvation_n 2._o cor._n 6._o 2._o etc._n etc._n 10._o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n two_o thing_n have_v always_o be_v high_o esteem_v among_o man_n the_o honour_n of_o their_o god_n and_o their_o unity_n peace_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o themselves_o and_o these_o two_o have_v be_v chief_o maintain_v among_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n by_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o after_o by_o eat_v or_o communicate_v of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n among_o themselves_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n preserve_v by_o sacrifice_n peace_n and_o unity_n be_v preserve_v and_o our_o saviour_n come_v not_o to_o take_v away_o peace_n unity_n and_o society_n of_o man_n with_o god_n or_o among_o themselves_o but_o to_o plant_v it_o say_v not_o for_o the_o apostle_n only_o do_v i_o pray_v but_o for_o they_o also_o that_o by_o their_o word_n shall_v believe_v in_o i_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o in_o we_o may_v be_v one_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o joh._n 17._o 20._o 11._o god_n almighty_a promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n that_o visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v never_o be_v take_v away_o say_v of_o priest_n and_o levits_n there_o shall_v not_o fail_v from_o before_o my_o face_n a_o man_n to_o offer_n holocau_v and_o to_o burn_v sacrifice_n and_o kill_v victimes_o all_o day_n jer_n 33._o 18._o according_a to_o which_o promise_n s._n paul_n command_v the_o christian_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n say_v you_o shall_v show_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o come_v 1._o cor._n 11._o 26._o who_o die_v offer_v up_o himself_o in_o a_o visible_a sacrifice_n as_o our_o adversary_n will_v confess_v 12._o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v take_v away_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o have_v institute_v a_o communion_n by_o take_v a_o eat_a a_o peace_n of_o bread_n and_o apprehend_v christ_n in_o heaven_n by_o meat_n without_o sacrifice_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_v the_o communion_n and_o eat_n of_o common_a meat_n faith_n he_o have_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o eat_n of_o common_a meat_n and_o the_o communion_n for_o every_o one_o who_o eat_v or_o drink_v pious_o like_o a_o christian_a and_o not_o like_o a_o beast_n apprehend_v god_n or_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n in_o heaven_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n as_o author_n and_o giver_n of_o that_o meat_n as_o often_o as_o they_o eat_v or_o drink_v 13._o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o general_a unto_o god_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n plant_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n even_o from_o the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n and_o faith_n be_v one_o and_o unchangeable_a as_o also_o there_o i_o have_v prove_v whereby_o it_o be_v sufficient_o law._n our_o saviour_n change_v not_o the_o faith_n but_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a law._n manifest_a unto_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o come_n do_v not_o nor_o will_v take_v away_o out_o of_o his_o church_n which_o he_o found_v upon_o earth_n external_a visible_a sacrifice_n but_o take_v away_o only_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o plant_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o more_o worthy_a gift_n as_o make_v surety_n of_o a_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7._o 22._o 14._o and_o to_o conclude_v all_o the_o know_a world_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 2._o and_o 3._o chapter_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a thereby_o to_o adore_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o latria_n or_o honour_n due_a only_o unto_o god_n and_o signify_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n unto_o he_o and_o union_n with_o he_o wherefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v quite_o take_v away_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n to_o any_o god_n some_o jew_n or_o gentle_a will_v have_v accuse_v he_o or_o the_o apostle_n of_o it_o sacrifice_n our_o saviour_n never_o accuse_v of_o take_v away_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o never_o read_v that_o they_o do_v yet_o the_o jew_n so_o high_o esteem_v visible_a sacrifice_n as_o they_o account_v it_o a_o punishment_n or_o curse_v to_o be_v without_o it_o as_o appeareth_z dan._n 9_o 27._o the_o 11._o 31._o and_o the_o 12._o 11._o osee_n 3._o 4._o joel._n 1._o 9_o and_o the_o gentile_n esteem_v it_o a_o sin_n worthy_a of_o death_n to_o abuse_v it_o as_o witness_v plato_n in_o his_o 10._o dialogue_n and_o a_o sign_n of_o atheism_n and_o impiety_n to_o neglect_v it_o as_o testify_v plutark_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v that_o there_o doctrine_n epicurus_n only_o for_o fear_n offer_v sacrifice_n contrary_a to_o his_o doctrine_n be_v no_o pleasant_a life_n according_a to_o epicurus_n who_o in_o doctrine_n and_o word_n deny_v the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n but_o not_o in_o practice_n for_o fear_v of_o the_o
shall_v be_v a_o clean_a oblation_n and_o not_o clean_a oblation_n and_o so_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n one_o and_o the_o same_o clean_a oblation_n though_o offer_v in_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o gentile_n convert_v unto_o christianity_n in_o europe_n asia_n africa_n and_o america_n our_o saviour_n not_o have_v many_o body_n but_o one_o 8._o eight_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n the_o name_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v great_a sacrifice_n the_o name_n of_o god_n great_a by_o occasion_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n among_o the_o gentile_n convert_v unto_o christianity_n and_o what_o greath_a sacrifice_n can_v there_o be_v then_o this_o where_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n for_o man_n and_o man_n live_v in_o this_o exile_n may_v receive_v and_o communicate_v god_n his_o creator_n see_v that_o herein_o do_v wonderful_o appear_v the_o charity_n or_o unity_n of_o god_n with_o christian_a man_n and_o his_o omnipotency_n wisdom_n goodness_n or_o mercy_n whereupon_o s._n mark_v the_o evangelist_n who_o plant_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n book_n which_o he_o make_v for_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n fett_v down_o in_o the_o first_o to_o i_o of_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la say_v we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n this_o reasonable_a and_o unbloudy_a worship_n of_o latria_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o to_o thou_o o_o god_n all_o nation_n do_v offer_v from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o go_v down_o from_o the_o north_n unto_o the_o south-all_a the_o gentile_n and_o in_o cense_v and_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n be_v offer_v to_o thy_o name_n in_o every_o place_n 9_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v this_o prophecy_n of_o malachi_n to_o be_v speak_v sacrifice_n the_o father_n understand_v the_o prophecy_n of_o malachi_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n as_o justine_n martyr_n in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o triphon_n who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 150._o after_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o saviour_n allege_v this_o place_n say_v then_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o every_o place_n s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o the_o jew_n and_o 16._o chapter_n allege_v this_o place_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v make_v void_a and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n establish_v say_v that_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n shall_v cease_v and_o the_o new_a be_v celebrate_v which_o appear_v by_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o isaie_n psalm_n 49._o and_o malachi_n the_o first_o say_v i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v not_o receive_v sacrifice_n from_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_n down_o my_o name_n be_v glorify_v among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n the_o send_v of_o incense_n be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n and_o a_o pure_a or_o clean_a sacrifice_n for_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n say_v the_o lord_n thus_o s._n cyprian_n against_o the_o jew_n s._n ireneus_fw-la who_o live_v with_o s._n polycarpe_n scholar_n to_o s._n john_n evangelist_n allege_v this_o place_n say_v of_o our_o saviour_n he_o take_v bread_n and_o give_v thanks_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n and_o teach_v the_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n offer_v to_o god_n in_o all_o the_o world_n whereof_o malachi_n foretell_v 10._o s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 95._o psalm_n cite_v this_o text_n of_o malachi_n say_v behold_v how_o excellent_o how_o perspicuous_o he_o have_v set_v four_o and_o describe_v the_o mystical_a table_n which_o be_v the_o unbloudy_a host_n eusebius_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n of_o evangelicall_a demonstration_n chap._n 10._o allege_v this_o place_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a law_n say_v we_o sacrifice_n after_o a_o new_a manner_n according_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o pure_a host_n 11._o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o jew_n say_v what_o will_v you_o answer_v to_o this_o open_a your_o eye_n at_o the_o last_o and_o see_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n offer_v to_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o go_v down_o not_o in_o one_o place_n as_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o you_o but_o in_o every_o place_n and_o the_o like_v he_o have_v in_o his_o 18_o book_n cap._n 35._o of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v malachi_n prophetize_v of_o the_o church_n which_o now_o we_o see_v propagate_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o god_n most_o plain_o say_v unto_o the_o jew_n i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o i_o will_v not_o receive_v gift_n at_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_n down_o great_a be_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o shall_v be_v sacrifice_a and_o offer_v unto_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n because_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n now_o we_o may_v see_v this_o sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n in_o every_o place_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_n down_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n unto_o who_o it_o be_v say_v i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o and_o gift_n i_o will_v not_o receive_v at_o your_o hand_n to_o have_v most_o manifest_o cease_v wherefore_o do_v they_o expect_v another_o christ_n when_o they_o see_v that_o which_o they_o read_v in_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v fulfil_v and_o can_v not_o be_v fulfil_v but_o by_o he_o thus_o augustine_n and_o the_o like_a be_v affirm_v by_o many_o more_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n cite_v at_o large_a by_o coccius_n in_o his_o 6._o book_n and_o 6._o article_n 12._o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n shall_v cease_v which_o we_o find_v true_a by_o experience_n and_o that_o a_o clean_a unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o among_o the_o convert_a gentile_n which_o also_o we_o find_v true_a by_o experience_n and_o to_o deny_v this_o where_o to_o overthrow_v the_o ancient_a father_n argument_n against_o the_o jew_n so_o manifest_v it_o be_v that_o a_o clean_a unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o among_o the_o christian_n that_o without_o deny_v the_o argument_n the_o ancient_a father_n use_v against_o the_o jew_n it_o can_v not_o be_v deneyd_v chap._n xi_o by_o the_o distinction_n of_o bloody_a and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v prove_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n 1._o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n there_o have_v be_v two_o kind_n of_o beginning_n two_o kind_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n from_o the_o beginning_n special_a visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n the_o one_o bloody_a by_o carnal_a effusion_n of_o blood_n out_o of_o the_o vein_n of_o some_o live_a thing_n the_o other_a unbloudy_a which_o have_v no_o such_o carnal_a effusion_n of_o blood_n but_o in_o some_o resemblance_n as_o by_o pour_v out_o of_o wine_n or_o by_o devide_v the_o thing_n offer_v to_o god_n as_o we_o read_v in_o gen._n 35._o and_o 14._o and_o levit._n 2._o 1._o 6._o and_o 14._o and_o both_o the_o bloody_a and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o his_o church_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n for_o abel_n offer_v a_o bloody_a sacrifice_n cain_n a_o unbloudy_a gen._n 4._o 3._o 4._o melchisedech_n a_o unblouddie_a gen._n 14._o 18._o jacob_n offer_v both_o gen._n 35._o 14._o gen._n 46._o 1._o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n there_o be_v many_o bloody_a sacrifice_n ordain_v levit._n 1._o 3._o and_o also_o diverse_a unbloudy_a levit._fw-la 2._o 1._o and_o 4._o and_o 5._o and_o 14._o leu_n 5._o 11._o gift_n unbloody_a sacrifice_n call_v gift_n 2._o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v common_o call_v gift_n as_o cain_n offer_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n gift_n to_o our_o lord_n gen._n 4._o 3._o but_o to_o cain_n and_o his_o gift_n god_n have_v not_o respect_n gen._n 4._o 5._o again_o if_o thou_o offer_v a_o gift_n of_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o thy_o corn_n to_o our_o lord_n of_o the_o ear_n be_v yet_o green_a thou_o shall_v
their_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v those_o their_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v so_o dissonant_n from_o all_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n use_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n that_o in_o the_o 36._o article_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n establish_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n they_o confess_v that_o this_o their_o say_a book_n be_v a_o book_n late_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o fix_a and_o confirm_v at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n and_o never_o before_o either_o invention_n the_o make_n of_o protestat_fw-la clergy_n a_o late_a invention_n set_v forth_o or_o confirm_v by_o any_o council_n or_o parliament_n but_o then_o divise_v as_o witness_v the_o statute_n itself_o of_o the_o 3_o and_o 4_o year_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o in_o the_o 12_o act_n saying_n be_v it_o enact_v by_o the_o king_n highness_n etc._n etc._n that_o such_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v sixth_o protestant_n clergy_n devise_v in_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o and_o consecrate_v of_o archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o by_o six_o other_o man_n of_o this_o realm_n learn_v in_o god_n law_n by_o the_o king_n majesty_n to_o be_v appoint_v and_o assign_v or_o by_o the_o most_o number_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v devise_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o set_v forth_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n before_o the_o first_o day_n of_o april_n next_o come_v shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o act_n be_v lawful_o exercise_v and_o use_v and_o none_o other_o any_o other_o statute_n law_n or_o usage_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o any_o wise_n notwithstanding_o thus_o this_o statute_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o before_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n priests_z etc._n etc._n be_v so_o ordain_v to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o our_o adversaire_n can_v not_o find_v a_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o make_v archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n and_o who_o shall_v not_o offer_v unbloody_a sacrifice_n but_o be_v force_v to_o invent_v and_o devise_v as_o the_o statute_n say_v a_o new_a one_o and_o this_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o 3._o creed_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n that_o thomas_n rogers_n a_o protestant_a glosser_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o english_a creed_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 36._o article_n ingenious_o catholic_n the_o protestant_a clergy_n no_o catholic_n confess_v that_o this_o article_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o protestant_a archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n &c._n &c._n be_v no_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o a_o thing_n no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v among_o catholic_a christian_n but_o then_o devise_v by_o protestant_n 4._o and_o after_o that_o they_o have_v devise_v a_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v archbishop_n bishop_n priests_z &c_n &c_n who_o shall_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o all_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n except_o only_o know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n to_o both_o party_n they_o can_v not_o find_v a_o book_n where_o the_o office_n of_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n be_v set_v down_o without_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n but_o be_v also_o force_v to_o invent_v a_o new_a book_n of_o office_n for_o their_o say_a bishop_n and_o priest_n called_z the_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n never_o hear_v of_o to_o have_v be_v use_v among_o any_o sort_n of_o man_n before_o luther_n except_o above_o except_v as_o witness_v the_o say_a book_n or_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o their_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o 5._o and_o 6._o year_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o and_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o experience_n itself_o our_o adversary_n not_o be_v able_a to_o find_v any_o such_o book_n set_v forth_o for_o the_o administration_n of_o any_o lord_n supper_n among_o any_o sect_n or_o sort_n of_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v 5._o the_o apostle_n themselves_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n ordain_v they_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o apostle_n the_o form_n of_o make_v bishop_n and_o priest_n set_v dwne_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o set_v forth_o also_o a_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o consecrate_v other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o in_o the_o 8._o book_n of_o their_o constitution_n where_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o consecrator_n say_v give_v unto_o he_o that_o be_v consecrate_v o_o allmightie_a lord_n by_o thy_o christ_n the_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o may_v have_v power_n to_o remit_v sin_n according_a to_o thy_o command_n and_o of_o lose_v all_o band_n according_a to_o the_o power_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o please_v thou_o in_o meekness_n and_o purity_n of_o heart_n by_o offer_v unto_o thou_o always_o without_o fault_n and_o without_o sin_n a_o pure_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o by_o christ_n thou_o have_v establish_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o a_o fragrant_a smell_n of_o sweetness_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o their_o say_a book_n the_o only_o beget_v christ_n do_v not_o take_v this_o honour_n to_o himself_o but_o be_v institute_v a_o chief_a priest_n by_o his_o father_n who_o be_v make_v man_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o offer_v a_o spiritual_a host_n his_o spiritual_a body_n to_o his_o god_n and_o father_n before_o his_o passion_n and_o ordain_v we_o only_o that_o we_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o when_o there_o be_v other_o with_o we_o whereof_o some_o also_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o whosoever_o do_v believe_v be_v not_o forth_o with_o make_v a_o priest_n or_o obtain_v the_o degree_n of_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o we_o offer_v a_o pure_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o our_o lord_n ordain_v have_v choose_v bishop_n &_o priest_n and_o seven_o deacon_n thus_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o constitution_n and_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o their_o authenticalnes_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o the_o preface_n of_o franciscus_n turrianus_n set_v before_o they_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v or_o consecrate_v bishop_n and_o priest_n thus_o establish_v there_o be_v never_o any_o catholic_n priest_n ordain_v who_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o witness_v all_o the_o pontifical_o or_o book_n set_v forth_o for_o the_o ordain_v of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n nor_o ever_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n or_o priest_n who_o have_v not_o for_o office_n the_o offering_n of_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereupon_o s._n basill_n bishop_n of_o capadocia_n as_o witness_v amphilochius_n in_o his_o life_n desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n to_o write_v a_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n wherein_o he_o may_v offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o continue_v in_o his_o prayer_n our_o lord_n appear_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n and_o say_v according_a to_o thy_o petition_n let_v thy_o mouth_n be_v fill_v with_o praise_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o by_o thy_o proper_a word_n thou_o may_v offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n again_o in_o his_o anaphora_fw-la he_o pray_v say_v thou_o o_o lord_n make_v we_o worthy_a that_o we_o may_v stand_v before_o thou_o with_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o minister_n unto_o thou_o and_o may_v offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o reverend_a and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n 6_o so_o likewise_o s._n chrisostome_n bishop_n of_o constantinopole_n not_o only_o in_o his_o liturgy_n pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v assist_v at_o his_o fearful_a sanctuary_n and_o finish_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n without_o offence_n but_o also_o affirm_v that_o christ_n as_o lord_n of_o all_o have_v deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o solemn_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n and_o sometime_o call_v it_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n sometime_o gift_n which_o be_v so_o extend_v all_o over_o that_o world_n in_o his_o time_n that_o in_o his_o homily_n upon_o the_o 95._o psal_n he_o say_v in_o
they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n daily_o and_o public_o use_v and_o practise_v in_o all_o the_o curche_n of_o christendom_n and_o no_o know_v christian_n catholic_n man_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o such_o a_o general_a corruption_n be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n in_o thing_n of_o lesser_a moment_n and_o more_o rare_o practise_v and_o of_o mean_a account_n and_o reckon_n neither_o can_v the_o whole_a christian_a catholic_n church_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n consider_v so_o sudden_o decay_n after_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o in_o all_o christendom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o know_v public_a practice_n of_o the_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 3._o and_o if_o we_o look_v in_o to_o the_o first_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n which_o be_v make_v jerusalem_n the_o christian_a unbloudie_a sacrifice_n begunn_v at_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n where_o the_o gospel_n first_o begin_v and_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v to_o be_v spread_v and_o preach_v unto_o all_o nation_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n luck_n 24._o 47._o act._n 1._o 8._o as_o into_o the_o liturgy_n which_o be_v make_v by_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n for_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n whereof_o he_o be_v institute_v bishop_n by_o the_o apostle_n as_o witness_v eusebius_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o history_n which_o liturgy_n be_v also_o confirm_v to_o be_v his_o by_o the_o 32._o canon_n of_o the_o 6._o general_a council_n by_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o his_o tradition_n of_o the_o divine_a liturgy_n and_o s._n cirill_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o 5._o catechesis_fw-la both_o which_o live_v above_o 1200._o year_n past_a and_o see_v what_o will_v be_v find_v there_o it_o will_v directe_v we_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n 4._o in_o this_o liturgy_n the_o priest_n say_v lord_n thou_o liturgy_n s._n james_n his_o liturgy_n have_v grant_v that_o we_o shall_v confident_o approach_v unto_o thy_o holy_a altar_n and_o offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o reverend_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n etc._n etc._n let_v it_o please_v thou_o that_o these_o gift_n which_o we_o offer_v with_o our_o hand_n may_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o thou_o etc._n etc._n do_v not_o turn_v away_o from_o we_o sinner_n handle_n tbis_n fearful_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n let_v it_o please_v thou_o o_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v be_v minister_n of_o thy_o new_a testament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o thy_o immaculate_a mystery_n and_o admit_v we_o approach_v unto_o thy_o holy_a altar_n according_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n that_o we_o may_v be_v worthy_a who_o will_v offer_v unto_o thou_o gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o ourselves_o and_o for_o those_o sin_n which_o the_o people_n have_v commit_v through_o ignorance_n grant_v we_o o_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v offer_v unto_o thou_o with_o all_o fear_n and_o a_o pure_a conscience_n this_o spiritual_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n we_o bend_v our_o knee_n unto_o thy_o goodness_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o o_o lord_n see_v that_o we_o worship_v and_o tremble_v when_o we_o be_v to_o approach_v unto_o tby_o holy_a altar_n to_o offer_v this_o fearful_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n etc._n etc._n we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o venerable_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n send_v upon_o we_o and_o upon_o these_o gift_n thy_o holy_a spirit_n 5._o and_o set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n he_o say_v jesus_n christ_n the_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v or_o rather_o the_o night_n in_o which_o be_v deliver_v himself_o for_o the_o life_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n take_v bread_n into_o his_o holy_a immaculate_a blameless_a and_o immortal_a hand_n look_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o show_v to_o thou_o god_n and_o father_n give_v thanks_n sanctify_v break_v he_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o disciple_n and_o apostle_n say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o be_v give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o like_a manner_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v take_v the_o chalice_n and_o mingle_v wine_n and_o water_n and_o look_v into_o heaven_n and_o show_v to_o thou_o god_n and_o father_n give_v thanks_n sanctify_v blessing_n fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o disciple_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o for_o many_o and_o be_v give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o chalice_n you_o do_v show_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o do_v confess_v his_o resurrection_n until_o he_o come_v 6._o and_o further_o tell_v we_o what_o these_o gift_n and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n be_v he_o say_v christ_n our_o lord_n do_v come_v forth_o that_o he_o may_v be_v immolate_a and_o give_v for_o meat_n to_o the_o faithful_a and_o put_v a_o part_n of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n into_o the_o chalice_n mingle_v they_o together_o he_o say_v the_o union_n of_o the_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o saviour_n jesu_n christ._n and_o sygn_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n he_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n who_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n slay_v for_o the_o life_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o effect_n in_o his_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n which_o he_o make_v for_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n whereof_o he_o be_v bishop_n 7._o and_o the_o like_a have_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice-booke_n which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n or_o apostolical_a man_n for_o the_o country_n and_o province_n which_o they_o have_v under_o their_o charge_n or_o which_o they_o have_v convert_v unto_o the_o christian_a catholic_a faith_n to_o the_o publish_n and_o dilate_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o jerusalem_n by_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n all_o over_o the_o world_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o prophecy_n in_o that_o kind_n as_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n of_o s._n peter_n make_v for_o the_o roman_n and_o these_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n matthew_n make_v for_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o further_a part_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s_n mark_v make_v for_o the_o egiptiens_n and_o grecian_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o margarinus_n in_o his_o sixth_o tome_n of_o his_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o and_o last_o tome_n of_o the_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la set_v forth_o by_o the_o divines_n of_o colen_n 8._o of_o these_o liturgy_n and_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n the_o afore_o say_v proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o place_n afore_o cite_v write_v thus_o very_o many_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v famous_a for_o piety_n and_o some_o of_o those_o who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n in_o writing_n the_o exposition_n of_o the_o mystitall_a liturgy_n among_o who_o s._n clement_n do_v challenge_v the_o first_o place_n who_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o declare_v his_o successor_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o s._n james_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n afterward_o basill_n the_o great_a find_v that_o many_o man_n think_v the_o former_a liturgy_n to_o long_o bring_v it_o into_o a_o more_o compendious_a form_n not_o long_o after_o our_o john_n who_o of_o his_o golden_a eloquence_n be_v call_v chrisostome_n have_v consideration_n of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o excuse_n take_v away_o many_o thing_n and_o prescribe_v a_o brief_a form_n etc._n etc._n after_o our_o saviour_n be_v assumptod_a into_o heaven_n the_o apostle_n before_o they_o be_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o live_v together_o give_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o prayer_n and_o find_v great_a consolation_n in_o that_o mystical_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n they_o sunge_v the_o liturgy_n at_o large_a with_o many_o prayer_n thus_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o
vexation_n may_v cease_v and_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n it_o forth_o with_o cease_v and_o in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v we_o sacrifice_n and_o do_v immolate_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n only_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n itself_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr origine_fw-la animae_fw-la he_o say_v according_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n grant_v that_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v offer_v for_o such_o as_o be_v not_o baptize_v which_o he_o also_o repeat_v again_o in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n 4._o in_o his_o 1._o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n he_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n earth_n this_o sacrifice_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n which_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v read_v the_o scripture_n do_v know_v be_v not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a law_n which_o sacrifice_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o again_o in_o his_o second_o sermon_n upon_o the_o same_o psalm_n he_o say_v christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n whereupon_o in_o his_o 86._o epistle_n he_o say_v christ_n give_v his_o blood_n to_o drink_v before_o his_o passion_n and_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 12._o book_n against_o faustus_n he_o say_v in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v drink_v that_o which_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o 56._o psalm_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o jew_n who_o crucify_v christ_n and_o afterward_o be_v convert_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o in_o this_o sacrament_n drink_v by_o grace_n the_o same_o blood_n which_o through_o fury_n they_o have_v shed_v 5._o and_o because_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o sacrifice_n one_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o all_o sacrifice_n our_o lord_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o all_o christian_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n though_o after_o a_o other_o manner_n therefore_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o 9_o book_n of_o confession_n call_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n by_o christian_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemtion_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemtion_n be_v offer_v for_o his_o mother_n after_o her_o decease_n at_o her_o funeral_n and_o in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n speak_v of_o his_o say_a mother_n s._n monica_n say_v she_o desire_v to_o be_v remember_v at_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n where_o at_o she_o use_v to_o assist_v without_o pretermission_n of_o altar_n this_o sacrifice_n dispense_v from_o the_o altar_n any_o one_o day_n and_o from_o whence_o she_o know_v that_o holy_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v dispense_v whereby_o the_o hand_n writing_n be_v blot_v out_o which_o carry_v our_o condemnation_n in_o it_o and_o whereby_o our_o enemy_n have_v triumph_v over_o us._n thus_o the_o glorious_a s._n augustine_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o he_o further_o affirm_v in_o the_o 3._o question_n of_o his_o 49._o epistle_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o christian_n do_v now_o offer_v be_v not_o only_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o write_a word_n of_o the_o ghospell_n but_o also_o by_o the_o prophecy_n 6._o neither_o be_v this_o expression_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n our_o lord_n find_v only_o in_o s._n augustine_n but_o also_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o be_v common_o style_v doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o namely_o in_o s._n basil_n s._n chrisostome_n s._n ambrose_n s._n gregory_n and_o s._n hierome_n for_o the_o church_n be_v in_o peace_n in_o their_o time_n the_o first_o four_o of_o these_o five_o that_o be_v to_o say_v s._n basil_n s._n chrisostome_n s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n gregory_n every_o one_o of_o they_o set_v forth_o book_n where_o in_o they_o express_v the_o form_n and_o manner_n how_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n with_o great_a solemnity_n missall_n fover_n doctor_n set_v forth_o missall_n and_o how_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o same_o which_o book_n be_v extant_a in_o print_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n basil_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n chrisostome_n the_o mass_n of_o s._n ambrose_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o circle_n of_o the_o year_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n gregory_n the_o pope_n where_o of_o the_o first_o two_o be_v print_v with_o their_o work_n the_o latter_a be_v print_v by_o pamelius_n in_o his_o two_o tome_n of_o the_o missall_n of_o the_o latin_a father_n which_o liturgy_n or_o missall_n be_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o with_o those_o liturgy_n and_o missall_n which_o be_v use_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o also_o with_o the_o liturgy_n and_o missall_n which_o be_v before_o their_o time_n as_o with_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n s._n andrew_n s._n mark_v s._n clement_n etc._n etc._n as_o may_v manifest_o appear_v unto_o any_o man_n who_o shall_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o view_v they_o 7._o moreover_o s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o sacrament_n set_v down_o the_o word_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v use_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n say_v will_v thou_o know_v how_o the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v by_o divine_a word_n he_o be_v the_o word_n the_o priest_n say_v make_v this_o oblation_n apply_v able_a unto_o we_o reasonable_a and_o acceptable_a which_o be_v down_o upon_o the_o figure_n consecration_n bread_n a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n before_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v after_o it_o follow_v who_o the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v take_v bread_n into_o his_o holy_a hand_n look_v up_o into_o heaven_n unto_o thou_o o_o holy_a father_n almighty_a eternal_a god_n give_v thanks_n bless_v break_v and_o break_a give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v of_o this_o all_o for_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o take_v the_o chalice_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v that_o be_v the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v look_v up_o into_o heaven_n unto_o thou_o holy_a father_n almighty_a eternal_a god_n give_v thanks_n bless_a deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n say_v take_v you_o and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n consider_v every_o thing_n he_o say_v who_o the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v he_o take_v bread_n into_o his_o holy_a hand_n therefore_o it_o be_v bread_n before_o it_o be_v consecrate_v but_o when_o christ_n word_n do_v approach_v it_o be_v the_o christ._n after_o consecration_n the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n body_n of_o christ_n final_o hear_v he_o say_v take_v you_o &_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o it_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o before_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o chalice_n full_a of_o wine_n and_o water_n but_o assoon_o as_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v do_v their_o work_n there_o be_v make_v the_o blood_n which_o redeem_v the_o people_n therefore_o consider_v after_o how_o many_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v powerful_a to_o convert_v all_o thing_n and_o to_o conclude_v our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n himself_o do_v testify_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o ought_v we_o to_o doubt_v of_o his_o sincerity_n and_o testimony_n thus_o s._n ambrose_n explicate_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o his_o time_n and_o the_o certainty_n there_o of_o in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v which_o manner_n of_o consecration_n be_v also_o use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o this_o day_n again_o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o show_v that_o the_o intent_n of_o these_o word_n as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v do_v this_o so_o often_o you_o shall_v do_v it_o in_o commemoration_n of_o i_o until_o i_o commeagaine_n be_v to_o command_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o immediate_o add_v to_o these_o word_n the_o priest_n say_v therefore_o mindful_a of_o his_o glorious_a
offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o withal_o give_v a_o express_a command_n that_o no_o other_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offer_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o church_n but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o we_o see_v fulfil_v 7._o as_o faith_n in_o jesus-christ_n to_o come_v and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o come_v do_v passion_n salvation_n at_o all_o time_n by_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n passion_n not_o hinder_v the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n from_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n passion_n to_o come_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n so_o neither_o may_v it_o do_v in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n see_v that_o christ_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n apoc._n 13._o 8._o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o passion_n the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n be_v save_v as_o they_o be_v now_o as_o our_o adversary_n together_o with_o we_o confess_v though_o now_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v better_a mean_n because_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o and_o jesus_n be_v make_v a_o surty_a of_o a_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7._o 22._o which_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v if_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o have_v not_o institute_v as_o he_o do_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o sin_n in_o better_a term_n 8._o and_o not_o only_o the_o scripture_n at_o the_o institution_n sin_n all_o high_a priest_n ordain_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o sin_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n do_v affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n offer_v a_o propitiatrie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o s._n paul_n say_v every_o high_a priest_n take_v from_o among_o man_n be_v appoint_v for_o man_n in_o these_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n heb._n 5._o 1._o wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o high_a priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n heb._n 5._o 10._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o offer_v gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n see_v that_o every_o high_a priest_n do_v it_o and_o consider_v that_o he_o ordain_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n priest_n the_o apostle_n high_a priest_n and_o his_o priest_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n act._n 1._o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o both_o offer_v gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o also_o ordain_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n and_o high_a priest_n for_o to_o offer_v gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o see_v that_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o no_o other_o gift_n give_v or_o break_v to_o god_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o manifest_o follow_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v offer_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n because_o he_o then_o teach_v his_o church_n what_o she_o shall_v do_v herein_o 9_o and_o not_o only_o the_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o sin_n the_o father_n affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n lord_n affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o s._n clement_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n s._n alexander_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n s._n irenaeus_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o heresy_n origen_n in_o his_o 35._o tract_n upon_o s._n matthew_n s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 28._o homily_n upon_o s._n math_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la but_o all_o the_o public_a liturgy_n or_o church_n service_n book_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o communion_n which_o have_v be_v use_v by_o any_o nation_n or_o people_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n only_o except_v affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o the_o liturgy_n or_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n s._n mark_v s._n basil_n s._n chrysostome_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n consider_v can_v not_o decay_n in_o the_o right_a use_n and_o belief_n of_o this_o sacrament_n 10._o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n sacrifice_n our_o saviour_n come_v to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v sacrifice_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o he_o wittness_v math._n 5._o and_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v figure_n and_o shadow_n of_o this_o one_o and_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n say_v priest_n that_o offer_v gift_n according_a to_o the_o law_n serve_v unto_o the_o example_n and_o shadow_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n heb._n 8._o 5._o for_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v heb._n 10._o 1._o and_o all_o these_o thing_n happen_v to_o they_o in_o figure_n 1._o cor._n 10._o for_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n say_v israel_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n do_v serve_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n where_o with_o the_o singular_a sacrifice_n new_a the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o old_a law_n shadow_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a be_v signify_v which_o now_o the_o israel_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n do_v offer_v again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n to_o commend_v that_o healthful_a sacrifice_n wherein_o his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o where_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v command_v to_o be_v immolate_a of_o unclean_a beast_n be_v shadow_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n peace_n laud_n and_o praise_n and_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o the_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n be_v use_v to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophecy_n concern_v these_o sacrifice_n 11._o wherefore_o see_v that_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o law_n of_o moses_n there_o be_v not_o only_o propitiatory_a new_a the_o diverse_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n fulfil_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o of_o thanksgiving_n and_o for_o peace_n as_o also_o upon_o vow_n make_v for_o the_o obtain_v some_o good_a thing_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o good_a of_o personne_n as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la and_o other_o place_n as_o also_o for_o cessation_n of_o plauge_n or_o other_o punishment_n as_o be_v specify_v in_o the_o 2._o of_o king_n and_o last_o chapter_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o temporal_a life_n of_o man_n which_o onias_n the_o high_a priest_n practise_v in_o the_o fact_n of_o heliodorus_n 2._o machab._n 3._o and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o life_n of_o darius_n and_o his_o child_n esdras_n and_o 6._o chapter_n what_o christian_a man_n can_v with_o reason_n deny_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n wherein_o all_o
of_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god._n the_o first_o part_n write_v by_o anonymus_n eremita_n he_o that_o sacrifice_v to_o god_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o to_o our_o lord_n only_o exod._n 22._o 20._o at_o bruxelles_n by_o hubert_n antony_z velpius_n printer_n to_o his_o majesty_n 1637._o to_o the_o most_o excellent_a high_a and_o mighty_a prince_z charles_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n &_o ireland_n etc._n etc._n health_n and_o eternal_a felicity_n most_o dread_a sovereign_n so_o many_o be_v the_o temporal_a blessing_n which_o all_o tie_n god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o your_o royal_a majesty_n that_o scarce_o can_v they_o be_v paralel_v in_o any_o other_o a_o monarch_n of_o three_o kingdom_n all_o fortefied_a with_o the_o ocean_n sea_n a_o queen_n wise_n virtuous_a beutifull_a and_o fruitful_a subject_n without_o number_n all_o in_o peace_n and_o plenty_n stryve_v how_o to_o express_v their_o love_n and_o obedience_n to_o so_o worthy_a a_o sovereign_n health_n of_o body_n and_o disposition_n of_o mind_n fit_a for_o any_o heroical_a action_n so_o that_o not_o know_v what_o to_o wish_v or_o how_o to_o add_v any_o more_o unto_o your_o present_a temporal_a estate_n and_o happiness_n as_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v i_o desire_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o these_o your_o temporal_a blessing_n may_v also_o be_v second_v with_o spiritual_a &_o eternal_a and_o for_o this_o cause_n and_o to_o this_o end_n have_v occasion_n to_o write_v of_o a_o medicine_n against_o mortality_n of_o a_o receipt_n against_o all_o disease_n corruption_n and_o death_n of_o a_o sovereign_a balm_n which_o whosoever_o will_v use_v worthy_o shall_v live_v eternal_o i_o can_v not_o but_o dedicate_v these_o my_o labour_n unto_o your_o majesty_n unto_o who_o above_o all_o man_n live_v i_o wish_v complete_a felicity_n that_o protect_v by_o your_o royal_a favour_n this_o cordial_n may_v work_v the_o effect_n i_o desire_v which_o be_v everlasting_a happiness_n to_o yourself_o &_o subject_n and_o so_o implore_v your_o royal_a clemency_n with_o most_o humble_a respect_n and_o profound_a submission_n i_o cast_v myself_o and_o labour_n under_o the_o shadow_n of_o your_o gracious_a protection_n ever_o to_o remain_v of_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n a_o most_o humble_a and_o most_o faithful_a subject_n anonymus_n eremita_n the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n dear_a reader_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a unto_o thou_o that_o a_o hermit_n who_o entertainment_n and_o conversation_n ought_v chief_o to_o be_v in_o solitude_n meditation_n &_o contemplation_n shall_v trouble_v himself_o in_o his_o cell_n with_o the_o turbulent_a controversy_n of_o this_o time_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o in_o former_a age_n when_o innocence_n and_o virtue_n most_o flourish_v every_o christian_a receive_v with_o his_o baptism_n after_o most_o constant_o to_o hold_v and_o profess_v the_o same_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n yet_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o in_o converse_v with_o dyvers_a puritan_n i_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o out_o of_o ignorance_n and_o want_n of_o knowledge_n what_o our_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v by_o who_o it_o be_v institute_v or_o to_o what_o end_n they_o hate_v it_o more_o than_o they_o do_v judaisme_n turkism_n or_o paganism_n itself_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o object_n our_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n as_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o their_o alienation_n from_o we_o when_o in_o truth_n and_o verity_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v the_o chief_a exterior_a visible_a honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o examination_n if_o we_o shall_v pass_v through_o all_o the_o exterior_a visible_a worship_n respect_n &_o reverence_n which_o be_v use_v by_o man_n in_o this_o life_n and_o it_o be_v so_o due_a unto_o god_n alone_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o creature_n or_o false_a god_n under_o penalty_n of_o high_a treason_n against_o his_o divine_a majesty_n punishable_a by_o death_n as_o witness_v his_o la_o and_o everlasting_a decree_n sage_v he_o that_o sacrifice_v to_o god_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o to_o our_o lord_n only_o so_o that_o the_o first_o motive_n which_o move_v i_o to_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n be_v the_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o blindness_n i_o find_v in_o many_o puritan_n who_o common_o will_v bitter_o inveigh_v against_o our_o visible_a sacrifice_n not_o know_v what_o it_o be_v nor_o wherefore_o it_o be_v institute_v for_o otherwise_o i_o suppose_v they_o will_v not_o be_v so_o vehement_a against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n &_o therefore_o think_v with_o myself_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o good_a of_o their_o soul_n to_o write_v plain_o and_o manifest_o of_o this_o subject_n without_o any_o flourish_a word_n or_o loftiness_n of_o style_n or_o far_o fetch_v invention_n to_o make_v every_o well_o mind_a simple_a protestant_n or_o puritan_n who_o will_v be_v delyght_v with_o truth_n capable_a to_o perceive_v and_o understand_v that_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n or_o mass_n which_o he_o so_o much_o hate_v be_v the_o chief_a exterior_a visible_a worship_n which_o do_v belong_v unto_o god_n alone_o that_o he_o may_v also_o defend_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o not_o oppose_v it_o second_o the_o emminencie_n &_o excellency_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v so_o great_a that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la call_v it_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n s._n ignatius_n disciple_n to_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n the_o medicine_n of_o immortality_n and_o antidote_n against_o death_n s._n epiphanius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o chief_a salvation_n of_o christian_n which_o before_o god_n be_v also_o so_o high_o pryse_v that_o when_o through_o wickedness_n of_o man_n and_o of_o antechrist_n it_o shall_v be_v quite_o take_v a_o way_n out_o of_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o world_n shall_v end_v as_o witness_v our_o faviour_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n john_n 6._o 51._o for_o even_o as_o when_o life_n be_v take_v from_o a_o man_n a_o man_n die_v so_o when_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o of_o antechrist_n the_o world_n shall_v be_v consume_v with_o fire_n as_o witness_v daniel_n 9_o 27._o mat._n 24._o 15._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 26._o which_o consider_v &_o find_v the_o passion_n of_o the_o puritan_n of_o our_o nation_n so_o furious_a against_o this_o say_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n as_o to_o esteem_v the_o reverence_n &_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o it_o idolatry_n and_o so_o to_o persecute_v it_o that_o if_o it_o lay_v in_o their_o poner_n they_o will_v not_o only_o extirpate_v it_o out_o of_o this_o island_n of_o great_a brittany_n but_o out_o of_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o bring_v in_o their_o fancy_n of_o eat_v a_o piece_n of_o baker_n bread_n the_o honour_n of_o my_o lord_n the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o the_o life_n of_o my_o country_n move_v i_o to_o abstract_n some_o hour_n from_o my_o ordinary_a recollection_n to_o defend_v with_o my_o pen_n the_o dignity_n of_o so_o eminent_a a_o sacrament_n if_o this_o work_n of_o my_o fall_n short_a of_o thy_o expectation_n accept_v of_o my_o good_a will_n which_o be_v if_o it_o be_v in_o my_o poner_n te_fw-la give_v all_o honour_n unto_o god_n unto_o who_o all_o honour_n and_o glory_n be_v due_a and_o unto_o thou_o reader_n life_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o so_o ir_a thy_o servant_n in_o christ_n jesus_n chap._n i._n what_o we_o understand_v by_o visible_a sacrifice_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o this_o book_n to_o unfold_v unto_o thou_o dear_a reader_n the_o whole_a scope_n of_o this_o our_o book_n and_o to_o set_v plain_o and_o manifest_o before_o thy_o eye_n the_o whole_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n of_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n where_o of_o i_o intend_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o treat_v it_o be_v necessary_a first_o to_o explicate_v unto_o thou_o what_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o general_n be_v then_o to_o distinguish_v the_o different_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n one_o from_o a_o other_o after_o to_o define_v or_o descrybe_n a_o proper_a exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n and_o last_o to_o set_v down_o the_o difference_n between_o catholic_n and_o english_a protestant_n and_o puritan_n concern_v visible_a sacrifice_n that_o by_o this_o first_o chapter_n thou_o may_v clear_o know_v what_o i_o treat_v of_o and_o see_v the_o say_v difference_n and_o the_o whole_a
scope_n of_o this_o book_n the_o more_o easy_o afterward_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o embrace_v it_o first_o a_o sacrifice_n general_n a_o sacrifice_n in_o general_n in_o general_a as_o it_o comprehend_v all_o kynde_n of_o christian_a sacrifice_n be_v describe_v by_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n to_o be_v any_o good_a work_n visible_a or_o invisible_a which_o be_v do_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v cleave_v fast_o to_o god_n by_o holy_a society_n as_o have_v relation_n to_o that_o end_n of_o goodness_n by_o which_o we_o may_v become_v true_o happy_a so_o that_o every_o good_a deed_n whether_o visible_a or_o invisible_a which_o we_o do_v for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n with_o a_o intent_n to_o unyte_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o or_o to_o stick_v close_o unto_o he_o who_o be_v our_o happy_a life_n may_v be_v call_v sacrifice_n in_o general_a term_n as_o holy_a thing_n or_o fact_n donn_v or_o dispose_v of_o to_o the_o right_a end_n of_o good_n which_o be_v god_n under_o this_o general_a kind_n sacrifice_n fower_n kind_n of_o sacrifice_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o asmuch_o as_n make_v for_o our_o purpose_n in_o this_o controversy_n we_o distinguish_v four_o particular_a kynde_n 1._o the_o first_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v only_o invisible_a sacrifice_n the_o first_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n where_o of_o the_o scripture_n speak_v say_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n be_v a_o afflict_a spirit_n psal_n 50._o 19_o and_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v all_o those_o inward_a and_o invisible_a operation_n of_o our_o heart_n who_o tend_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o love_n of_o god_n as_o for_o example_n the_o inward_a mortification_n of_o our_o inordinate_a appetyte_n and_o desire_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n say_v we_o be_v kill_v for_o thy_o sake_n all_o the_o day_n rom._n 8._o 36._o and_o these_o be_v call_v spiritual_a sacrifice_n for_o that_o by_o the_o spirit_n we_o invisible_o mortify_v and_o kill_v the_o inordinate_a desire_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o flesh_n where_o of_o s._n paul_n further_o speak_v say_v if_o by_o the_o spirit_n you_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v live_v rom._n 8._o 13._o 2._o the_o second_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v all_o those_o sacrifice_n the_o second_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n outward_a pious_a action_n and_o good_a deed_n which_o represent_v unto_o we_o the_o aforesaid_a inward_a affection_n of_o man_n mind_n as_o flower_n and_o fruit_n do_v the_o root_n of_o which_o kind_n be_v all_o the_o outward_a sacrifice_n of_o praise_n justice_n faith_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o sense_n every_o pious_a outward_a good_a work_n which_o be_v donn_v for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n as_o have_v his_o subordination_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o goodness_n whereupon_o s._n paul_n call_v the_o give_v of_o alm_n for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n a_o sacrifice_n phil._n 4._o 18._o heb._n 13._o 16._o in_o this_o sense_n to_o praise_n god_n or_o pray_v be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n psal_n 49._o 14._o heb._n 13._o 15._o etc._n etc._n but_o as_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n affirm_v the_o work_n of_o mercy_n if_o they_o be_v not_o do_v for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n because_o they_o want_v the_o end_n unto_o which_o all_o sacrifice_n be_v ordain_v which_o be_v that_o we_o may_v adhere_v and_o cleave_v unto_o god_n by_o holy_a society_n these_o two_o kynde_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v call_v general_a because_o they_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v donn_v or_o perform_v by_o all_o man_n general_o who_o be_v come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n and_o have_v ability_n without_o any_o particular_a vocation_n or_o election_n more_o than_o the_o obligation_n of_o all_o mankind_n 3._o the_o three_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o death_n sacrifice_n the_o 3._o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v general_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o by_o it_o we_o be_v redeem_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v above_o all_o other_o chief_o and_o principal_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o upon_o which_o all_o other_o sacrifice_n do_v or_o aught_o to_o depend_v as_o commemoration_n or_o application_n of_o it_o unto_o ourselves_o for_o though_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n redeem_v all_o mankind_n from_o everlasting_a pain_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o so_o redeem_v man_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v or_o perform_v on_o his_o part_n for_o the_o obtain_v of_o his_o salvation_n but_o only_o to_o live_v idle_o for_o so_o the_o sacred_a passion_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v a_o cloak_n for_o idleness_n and_o sin_n but_o he_o redeem_v mankind_n conditional_o that_o man_n shall_v do_v these_o and_o these_o thing_n thereby_o to_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n unto_o himself_o and_o so_o be_v save_v as_o witness_v our_o saviour_n say_v not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n matth._n 7._o 21._o 4._o the_o fowth_n kind_n proper_a to_o the_o faithful_a sacrifice_n the_o fowrth_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n whereof_o we_o be_v to_o treat_v be_v a_o oblation_n or_o gift_n give_v or_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o a_o altar_n by_o a_o priest_n the_o only_a lawful_a minister_n of_o a_o particular_a visible_a thing_n wherein_o there_o be_v make_v some_o alteration_n or_o change_v to_o express_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o also_o to_o signify_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n his_o dominion_n over_o we_o and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o our_o unity_n in_o religion_n among_o ourselves_o under_o one_o god_n as_o witness_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o no_n gen._n 8._o 26._o of_o abraham_n gen._n 15._o 9_o of_o jacob_n gen._n 31._o 54._o gen._n 33._o 20._o gen._n 14._o of_o job_n job._n 1._o 5._o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n perscrybed_n by_o god_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o write_a law_n which_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o old_a law_n as_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n affirm_v to_o express_v or_o signify_v by_o they_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v donn_v in_o we_o to_o this_o end_n only_o that_o we_o may_v stick_v or_o cleave_v unto_o god_n and_o give_v council_n unto_o our_o neighbour_n that_o he_o may_v tend_v unto_o the_o same_o end_n and_o then_o discrybe_a what_o such_o a_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v immediate_o add_v say_v therefore_o a_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n so_o that_o a_o perfect_a visible_a sacrifice_n consist_v in_o itself_o of_o three_o part_n the_o exterior_a visible_a oblation_n and_o action_n which_o be_v call_v as_o s._n augustine_n say_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n the_o invisible_a operation_n which_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o acknowledge_v of_o god_n for_o our_o god_n &c_n &c_n and_o the_o good_a work_n whereby_o god_n be_v honour_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n and_o peace_n and_o unity_n in_o religion_n practice_n among_o ourselves_o wherefore_o this_o fowrth_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n whereof_o of_o i_o intend_v chief_o to_o treat_v include_v the_o first_o and_o second_o kind_n as_o the_o whole_a do_v the_o part_n a_o have_v relation_n unto_o the_o three_o as_o a_o commemoration_n or_o application_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o it_o unto_o ourselves_o 5._o whereas_o i_o say_v that_o a_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o oblation_n or_o gift_n give_v or_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o a_o altar_n by_o a_o lawful_a minister_n of_o a_o particular_a visible_a thing_n wherein_o there_o be_v make_v some_o real_a alteration_n or_o change_v to_o express_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v so_o manifest_a in_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n that_o it_o need_v no_o other_o proofe-then_a the_o read_n and_o observe_v what_o be_v donn_v in_o those_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o this_o real_a allteration_n come_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a la_o expression_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o come_v and_o change_v which_o be_v make_v in_o
their_o sacrifice_n either_o by_o kill_v of_o live_a thing_n or_o bruise_v of_o solid_a thing_n or_o shed_v of_o liquid_a be_v to_o express_v or_o show_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o come_v s._n paul_n witness_v say_v these_o thing_n happen_v to_o they_o in_o figure_n 1._o cor._n 10._o and_o s._n john_n say_v the_o lamb_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n revel_v 13._o 8._o not_o in_o itself_o but_o in_o his_o sign_n figure_n effect_n and_o virtue_n where_o upon_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v shadow_n of_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o dispraise_v it_o but_o signify_v it_o for_o as_o one_o thing_n may_v be_v signify_v by_o many_o word_n and_o many_o tongue_n so_o this_o one_o true_a and_o singular_a sacrifice_n be_v before_o signify_v by_o many_o figurative_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o like_v he_o have_v in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v use_v to_o show_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o come_v 6._o second_o we_o say_v there_o be_v make_v some_o real_a alteration_n or_o change_n in_o the_o thing_n offer_v not_o only_o to_o express_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o also_o to_o signify_v the_o invisible_a contrition_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n his_o dominion_n over_o we_o and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o which_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n not_o only_o signify_v but_o also_o in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n further_o express_v say_v visible_a thing_n visible_a sacrifice_n sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a as_o word_n of_o thing_n sacrifice_n be_v sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a as_o sound_v word_n be_v sign_n of_o thing_n wherefore_o as_o when_o we_o pray_v or_o praise_n we_o direct_v the_o signefy_a word_n unto_o he_o to_o who_o we_o offer_v the_o thing_n signify_v in_o our_o heart_n so_o when_o we_o see_v man_n offer_v say_v he_o we_o know_v that_o visible_a sacrifice_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o any_o other_o but_o unto_o he_o who_o invisible_a sacrifice_n we_o ourselves_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o our_o heart_n thus_o s._n augustine_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o of_o his_o dominion_n over_o we_o and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o as_o sounding_z or_o articulate_a word_n be_v sign_n of_o thing_n and_o therefore_o as_o when_o man_n speak_v word_n to_o god_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o same_o intention_n in_o their_o heart_n which_o their_o articulate_a or_o sound_a word_n do_v signify_v so_o likewise_o when_o man_n offer_v exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n they_o be_v oblege_v to_o have_v a_o inward_a and_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o lord_n god_n and_o to_o manifest_v his_o dominion_n over_o they_o and_o their_o subjection_n unto_o he_o because_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v sign_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n god_n acknowledge_v for_o god_n by_o visible_a sacrifice_n invisible_a of_o our_o heart_n as_o word_n be_v of_o thing_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o he_o who_o invisible_a sacrifice_n we_o ourselves_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o who_o man_n offer_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o heart_n he_o he_o acknowledge_v for_o his_o god_n creator_n etc._n etc._n and_o have_v no_o other_o god_n before_o he_o which_o god_n himself_o signify_v say_v son_n give_v i_o thy_o heart_n proverb_n 23._o whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v worship_n of_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n only_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v more_o at_o large_a hereafter_o 7._o though_o we_o ought_v chief_o to_o adore_v and_o serve_v god_n with_o our_o mind_n and_o spirit_n because_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n &_o they_o that_o adore_v he_o must_v adore_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o verity_n joh._n 4._o 24._o yet_o because_o the_o inward_a act_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o mind_n may_v be_v neglect_v without_o any_o notice_n take_v either_o by_o ourselves_o or_o other_o as_o we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n in_o the_o many_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v forget_v and_o the_o distraction_n in_o our_o prayer_n and_o because_o man_n be_v compose_v of_o body_n and_o soul_n it_o therefore_o please_v his_o divine_a majesty_n for_o the_o benefitt_a sacrifice_n the_o cause_n why_o god_n ordain_v visible_a sacrifice_n of_o man_n to_o ordain_v that_o these_o exterior_a corporal_a action_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v a_o sacred_a public_a and_o know_v sign_n of_o the_o inward_a operation_n and_o affection_n of_o man_n mind_n towards_o god_n thereby_o to_o oblege_v man_n under_o the_o penalty_n of_o hypocrisy_n to_o publish_v the_o inward_a desire_n and_o inclination_n of_o his_o heart_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n under_o visible_a solemn_a sign_n otherwise_o as_o s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 83._o homily_n upon_o s._n matth._n say_v if_o thou_o have_v not_o have_v a_o body_n god_n will_v have_v deliver_v invisible_a why_o visible_a thing_n be_v institute_v to_o represent_v invisible_a unto_o thou_o naked_a gift_n which_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v body_n but_o because_o thy_o soul_n be_v join_v to_o thy_o body_n therefore_o he_o have_v deliver_v unto_o thou_o intelligible_a thing_n unter_v visible_a form_n 8._o three_o we_o say_v that_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v not_o only_o offer_v for_o the_o cause_n above_o sacrifice_n union_n in_o religion_n and_o charity_n preserve_v by_o sacrifice_n say_v but_o also_o to_o signify_v our_o union_n in_o religion_n among_o ourselves_o under_o one_o god_n according_a to_o that_o common_a actiome_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v one_o to_o a_o three_o be_v one_o among_o themselves_o all_o the_o faithful_a sacrifice_v their_o heart_n to_o god_n have_v one_o heart_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o whereof_o proceed_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n unyte_v in_o religion_n and_o charity_n among_o themselves_o for_o he_o who_o have_v one_o heart_n with_o god_n be_v one_o with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o all_o those_o who_o true_o and_o real_o offer_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o sacred_a communion_n among_o man_n but_o of_o meat_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n as_o of_o meat_n offer_v to_o god_n for_o a_o sacred_a exterior_a sign_n of_o common_a union_n of_o man_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 9_o now_o see_v that_o god_n create_v man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o man_n to_o acknowledge_v god_n invisible_a why_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a for_o his_o lord_n god_n and_o to_o make_v a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o have_v peace_n and_o unity_n with_o god_n and_o other_o man_n and_o yet_o all_o man_n can_v not_o speak_v all_o language_n nor_o understand_v what_o shall_v have_v be_v say_v if_o those_o thing_n shall_v have_v be_v only_o act_v in_o word_n therefore_o out_o of_o the_o infinite_a providence_n of_o god_n for_o the_o benefitt_a of_o all_o nation_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o his_o honour_n and_o unity_n which_o he_o will_v have_v among_o all_o his_o servant_n shall_v be_v perform_v in_o outward_a solemn_a visible_a sign_n know_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o all_o may_v visible_o see_v and_o know_v unto_o what_o they_o be_v visible_o and_o invisible_o oblige_v and_o consider_v that_o for_o the_o good_a of_o man_n kind_n it_o be_v necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v some_o outward_a visible_a thing_n institute_v which_o may_v not_o only_o private_o preserve_v in_o every_o one_o the_o honour_n and_o love_n of_o god_n and_o his_o neighbour_n but_o also_o maintain_v a_o public_a practice_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n memory_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o unity_n among_o all_o his_o servant_n in_o what_o sacred_a outward_a visible_a sign_n can_v it_o better_o be_v express_v then_o in_o a_o visible_a sacrifice_n represent_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n which_o be_v the_o act_n and_o sacred_a observation_n of_o our_o reconliation_n and_o peace_n with_o god_n
by_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n 10._o if_o any_o object_n and_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n it_o how_o god_n do_v desire_v sacrifice_n and_o not_o desire_v it_o often_o affirm_v that_o god_n do_v not_o desire_v sacrifice_n this_o objection_n s._n auguctine_n answer_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a chapter_n prove_v by_o many_o example_n of_o scripture_n that_o when_o it_o be_v say_v god_n do_v not_o require_v sacrifice_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o visible_a sign_n which_o be_v common_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v without_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n for_o so_o it_o be_v but_o a_o false_a sign_n and_o hypocrisy_n such_o as_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o cain_n who_o offer_v his_o good_n as_o a_o visible_a sign_n but_o not_o his_o heart_n in_o a_o invisible_a sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o his_o sacrifice_n be_v reject_v and_o abell_n accept_v as_o witness_v rupertus_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n upon_o genesis_n and_o second_o chapter_n saying_n by_o faith_n say_v s._n paul_n abel_n offer_v a_o great_a host_n than_o cain_n for_o in_o exterior_a worship_n and_o religion_n they_o both_o offer_v alike_o and_o therefore_o both_o of_o they_o offer_v right_o but_o cain_n do_v not_o right_o divide_v for_o cain_n while_o he_o offer_v his_o good_n to_o god_n keep_v himself_o unto_o himself_o have_v his_o heart_n fix_v in_o earthly_a desire_n such_o portion_n or_o outward_a gift_n god_n do_v not_o accept_v of_o but_o by_o himself_o say_v in_o the_o 23._o of_o the_o proverbe_n son_n give_v unto_o i_o thy_o heart_n wherefore_o abel_n first_o offer_v unto_o god_n his_o heart_n and_o then_o his_o good_n and_o so_o offer_v by_o faith_n a_o great_a host_n than_o cain_n who_o offer_v the_o outward_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o visible_a sign_n but_o keep_v the_o inward_a which_o god_n most_o esteem_v unto_o himself_o 11._o the_o case_n stand_v before_o god_n with_o sacrifice_n alike_o the_o case_n of_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n alike_o as_o it_o do_v with_o prayer_n god_n command_v prayer_n mark_n 14._o 38._o and_o yet_o say_v that_o some_o kind_n of_o prayer_n be_v hypocrisy_n math._n 15._o 7._o in_o like_a manner_n god_n so_o affect_v sacrifice_n that_o under_o penalty_n of_o death_n he_o prohibit_v it_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o himself_o exod._n 22._o 20._o and_o yet_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o isay_n 1._o 12._o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o exterior_a prayer_n which_o be_v common_o call_v prayer_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o interior_a prayer_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o when_o it_o want_v be_v hypocrisy_n as_o a_o false_a sign_n so_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v common_o call_v sacrifice_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o interior_a and_o when_o it_o be_v without_o this_o it_o be_v hypocrisy_n as_o a_o false_a sign_n so_o god_n will_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o he_o will_v not_o prayer_n nor_o sacrifice_n he_o will_v have_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n when_o they_o be_v conjoin_v with_o the_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o he_o will_v not_o have_v prayer_n nor_o sacrifice_n when_o they_o be_v not_o accompany_v with_o the_o heart_n because_o they_o be_v hypocrisy_n as_o make_v show_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o whereupon_o after_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o 50._o psalm_n have_v say_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n be_v a_o afflict_a spirit_n a_o contryte_n and_o humble_a heart_n o_o god_n thou_o will_v not_o despise_v etc._n etc._n he_o add_v then_o shall_v thou_o accept_v sacrifice_n of_o justice_n oblation_n and_o holocau_v then_o shall_v they_o lay_v calf_n upon_o thy_o altar_n when_o with_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n man_n shall_v offer_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n by_o sorrow_n for_o the_o negligence_n of_o their_o life_n past_a contrition_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o humiliation_n before_o god_n unto_o who_o that_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v they_o shall_v they_o offer_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n of_o justice_n oblation_n and_o holocauste_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o not_o otherwise_o because_o the_o outward_a sacrifice_n with_o out_o this_o inward_a and_o invisible_a be_v but_o hipocrysie_n 12._o visible_a sacrifice_n say_v saint_n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n a_o fore_n reoyt_v be_v sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a thing_n visible_a sacrifice_n be_v sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a as_o word_n be_v of_o thing_n as_o word_n be_v sign_n of_o thing_n wherefore_o when_o without_o any_o just_a necessity_n man_n speak_v word_n and_o have_v other_o intention_n in_o their_o heart_n than_o their_o word_n sound_a or_o signify_v it_o be_v but_o dissimulation_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o word_n which_o be_v ordain_v to_o express_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o heart_n so_o when_o we_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n without_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n it_o be_v hypocrisy_n or_o dissemble_a sanctity_n which_o be_v double_a iniquity_n because_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v unto_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o public_a sacred_a visible_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o man_n heart_n unto_o god_n as_o word_n be_v ordain_v to_o express_v the_o sincerity_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o because_o man_n shall_v always_o have_v a_o intention_n and_o be_v ever_o ready_a to_o give_v his_o heart_n and_o soul_n to_o god_n without_o dissimulation_n therefore_o he_o may_v never_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n without_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o heart_n 13._o s._n augustine_n express_v the_o excellency_n of_o invisible_a the_o excellency_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n conjoin_v to_o the_o invisible_a this_o visible_a sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o how_o acceptable_a it_o be_v unto_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n add_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n say_v when_o we_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n together_o with_o the_o invisible_a of_o our_o heart_n then_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o superior_a power_n and_o the_o more_o powerful_a spirit_n through_o their_o goodness_n &_o piety_n do_v favour_n we_o and_o rejoice_v with_o we_o and_o according_a to_o their_o power_n do_v help_v we_o to_o offer_v this_o visible_a sacrifice_n thus_o s._n augustine_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o visible_a sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v unyte_v unto_o the_o invisible_a of_o our_o heart_n and_o how_o acceptable_a it_o be_v unto_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o whole_a triumphant_a church_n in_o heaven_n 14._o the_o reason_n why_o the_o triumphant_a church_n in_o sacrifice_n why_o the_o angel_n rejoice_v at_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n heaven_n which_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v do_v consist_v of_o the_o assembly_n of_o many_o thousand_o angel_n do_v so_o rejoice_v at_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v as_o they_o themselves_o say_v fellow_n servant_n with_o those_o who_o serve_v god_n upon_o earth_n and_o see_v that_o man_n here_o upon_o earth_n can_v continewally_v without_o intermission_n think_v of_o god_n and_o honour_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o he_o by_o a_o perpetual_a and_o continewall_n sacrify_v of_o their_o heart_n unto_o he_o as_o they_o in_o heaven_n do_v who_o day_n and_o night_n cry_v holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n omnipotent_a and_o so_o be_v eternal_o happy_a therefore_o they_o do_v rejoice_v that_o yet_o sometime_o man_n upon_o earth_n will_v actual_o think_v upon_o god_n and_o actual_o honour_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o latria_n worship_v due_a only_o unto_o he_o and_o consecrate_v their_o heart_n unto_o he_o alone_o who_o be_v their_o end_n and_o chief_a good_a thereby_o to_o become_v partaker_n of_o a_o little_a drop_n of_o their_o happiness_n for_o as_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o confession_n say_v this_o be_v happy_a life_n to_o rejoice_v in_o god_n of_o god_n and_o for_o god_n this_o be_v it_o and_o other_o be_v none_o now_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o offer_v this_o 4._o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n or_o no_o the_o puritan_n deny_v that_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v any_o such_o kind_n of_o extenall_a church_n puritan_n deny_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n the_o moderate_a sort_n of_o protestant_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n confess_v it_o in_o word_n and_o doctrine_n though_o not_o in_o practice_n as_o his_o late_a decease_a majesty_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o cardinal_n perron_n relate_v by_o casaubon_n say_v the_o
the_o merit_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n unto_o we_o as_o a_o commemoration_n thereof_o and_o a_o mean_n to_o obtain_v justification_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o contrition_n and_o penance_n for_o our_o sin_n as_o be_v set_v down_o more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 22._o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o in_o provinge_v of_o this_o will_v consist_v the_o whole_a scope_n of_o this_o our_o book_n follow_v chap._n ii_o the_o necessity_n of_o visible_a sacrificie_fw-la and_o the_o end_n or_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o use_v 1._o two_o thing_n have_v always_o be_v much_o recommend_v sacrifice_n the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o peace_n much_o recommend_v to_o man_n by_o god_n the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o peace_n maintain_v by_o visible_a sacrifice_n by_o god_n and_o high_o esteem_v by_o man_n of_o all_o sect_n and_o sort_n who_o firm_o bevele_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o extend_v his_o providence_n over_o mankind_n first_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o peace_n with_o he_o and_o second_o unity_n peace_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o these_o two_o have_v always_o be_v chief_o maintain_v among_o man_n by_o a_o particular_a visible_a sacrifice_n first_o offer_v unto_o god_n upon_o a_o altar_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n unto_o he_o and_o after_o eat_v or_o communicate_v among_o themselves_o by_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n upon_o a_o altar_n unto_o god_n they_o solemn_o protest_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n unto_o he_o public_o adore_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o and_o visible_o make_v profession_n of_o peace_n unity_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o themselves_o union_n the_o communion_n make_v of_o meat_n offer_v to_o god_n in_o sign_n of_o union_n and_o by_o eat_v of_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n which_o have_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n they_o ratify_v and_o establish_v the_o same_o peace_n and_o unity_n as_o partaker_n of_o that_o meat_n with_o they_o have_v offer_v unto_o god_n for_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o common_a union_n as_o be_v general_o manifest_a by_o experience_n in_o all_o sect_n and_o sort_n of_o people_n of_o former_a age_n who_o firm_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o his_o providence_n be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o government_n of_o mankind_n 2._o and_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o faithful_a who_o live_v in_o unity_n in_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n the_o faithful_a offer_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o honour_n god_n and_o maintain_v unity_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n write_v law_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n after_o that_o jacob_n and_o laban_n his_o father_n in_o law_n have_v agree_v upon_o a_o peace_n firm_a freindshipp_n and_o league_n as_o before_o god_n there_o present_a and_o behold_v they_o jacob_n for_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o peace_n offer_v victimes_o in_o the_o mount_n and_o call_v his_o brethren_n to_o eat_v bread_n who_o when_o they_o have_v eat_v lodge_v there_o gen._n 31._o 54._o where_o in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o peace_n conclude_v jacob_n offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n adore_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o etc._n etc._n and_o after_o the_o sacrifice_n call_v his_o brethren_n to_o communicate_v or_o eat_v of_o the_o victimes_o the_o more_o to_o ratify_v the_o unity_n peace_n and_o concord_n among_o themselves_o by_o eat_v of_o the_o meat_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o sign_n of_o union_n 3._o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n in_o their_o last_o supper_n they_o offer_v visible_a sacrificie_fw-la unto_o god_n in_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n lamb_n sacrifice_n in_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n thereby_o public_o to_o honour_n god_n as_o their_o sovereign_a lord_n god_n and_o to_o express_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n unto_o he_o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v they_o communicate_v of_o it_o the_o more_o firm_o to_o maintain_v peace_n and_o unity_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o by_o eat_v of_o meat_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o union_n of_o their_o heart_n in_o he_o exod._n 12._o 4._o in_o like_a manner_n after_o that_o moses_n have_v tell_v his_o father_n in_o law_n jethro_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o land_n of_o madian_a sacrifice_n jethro_n offer_v sacrifice_n all_o thing_n that_o our_o lord_n have_v do_v for_o israel_n jethro_n rejoice_v and_o say_v now_o i_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v great_a above_o all_o go_n jethro_n therefore_o offer_v holocau_v and_o host_n to_o god_n thereby_o to_o adore_v he_o with_o divine_a honour_n and_o to_o express_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o heart_n unto_o he_o and_o aron_n and_o the_o ancient_n of_o israel_n come_v to_o eat_v bread_n with_o he_o before_o god_n exod._n 18._o to_o confirm_v unity_n peace_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n before_o the_o write_a law_n be_v give_v 5._o in_o the_o write_a law_n god_n say_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o place_n which_o god_n have_v choose_v unity_n in_o the_o write_v la_o the_o faithful_a offer_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o honour_n god_n and_o maintain_v peace_n and_o unity_n which_o be_v jerusalem_n shall_v you_o come_v and_o shall_v offer_v in_o that_o place_n holocau_v and_o victimes_o thereby_o as_o by_o a_o sacred_a sign_n to_o express_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o to_o adore_v god_n with_o the_o honour_n of_o latria_n and_o you_o shall_v eat_v there_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n deut._n 12._o to_o ratify_v peace_n unity_n and_o concord_n among_o themselves_o again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n thither_o to_o jerusalem_n shall_v you_o bring_v all_o the_o thing_n that_o god_n command_v you_o holocau_v etc._n etc._n there_o shall_v you_o feast_v before_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n where_o upon_o it_o be_v say_v that_o elcana_n immolate_a and_o give_v to_o phenenna_n his_o wife_n and_o to_o all_o her_o son_n and_o daughter_n part_n and_o to_o anna_n one_o part_n 1._o king_n 1._o 4._o in_o like_a manner_n solomon_n and_o all_o israel_n with_o he_o do_v immolate_v victimes_o before_o our_o lord_n and_o solomon_n kill_v peaceable_a host_n which_o he_o immolate_a to_o our_o lord_n of_o ox_n 22000._o and_o of_o sheep_n 120000._o etc._n etc._n and_o make_v in_o that_o time_n a_o solemn_a festivitie_n and_o all_o israel_n with_o he_o for_o 14._o day_n 3._o king_n 8._o 60._o and_o this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o old_a law_n to_o establish_v and_o preserve_v the_o unity_n peace_n and_o society_n of_o man_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o as_o further_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v what_o thing_n soever_o we_o read_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o god_n about_o the_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o ministry_n either_o of_o the_o tabernacle_n or_o of_o the_o temple_n be_v write_v to_o signify_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n for_o upon_o these_o two_o commandment_n as_o it_o be_v write_v do_v depend_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o the_o prophet_n thus_o s._n augstine_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v all_o institute_v by_o god_n to_o this_o end_n only_o to_o maintain_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n among_o themselves_o by_o the_o union_n of_o their_o heart_n in_o god_n which_o these_o sacrifice_n do_v represent_v 6._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o new_a law_n our_o lord_n grace_n sacrifice_n institute_v in_o the_o la_o of_o grace_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n offer_v his_o body_n for_o a_o gift_n unto_o his_o eternal_a father_n and_o then_o give_v his_o say_a body_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o his_o church_n to_o eat_v say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o luk_n 22._o as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o your_o heart_n and_o a_o preservation_n of_o unity_n peace_n and_o society_n with_o god_n and_o among_o yourselves_o as_o be_v the_o gift_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o write_a law_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v he_o establish_v this_o manner_n of_o offer_v his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o a_o gift_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o in_o lieu_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o
which_o he_o then_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk_n 22._o and_o so_o teach_v his_o follower_n to_o offer_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n with_o he_o who_o be_v their_o head_n lord_n and_o master_n that_o though_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n and_o multitude_n of_o sin_n forme_o commit_v their_o invisible_a sacrifice_n may_v be_v less_o grateful_a yet_o by_o he_o and_o through_o he_o who_o be_v their_o head_n it_o may_v be_v also_o most_o acceptable_a 7._o our_o saviour_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n have_v bestow_v himself_o upon_o we_o for_o to_o be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v be_v our_o sacrifice_n public_a sacred_a solemn_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n not_o only_o to_o oblige_v we_o daily_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o present_a god_n the_o father_n with_o his_o son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v but_o also_o to_o offer_v ourselves_o with_o he_o and_o by_o he_o and_o not_o to_o offer_v he_o alone_o who_o be_v our_o head_n and_o retain_v ourselves_o who_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v his_o member_n unto_o ourselves_o as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o ourselves_o with_o the_o sacrifice_n we_o be_v to_o offer_v also_o ourselves_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o church_n do_v frequent_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o the_o faithful_a know_v where_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o he_o that_o in_o the_o oblation_n which_o he_o do_v offer_v he_o be_v also_o offer_v himself_o again_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o say_a book_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o priest_n he_o offer_v and_o he_o be_v the_o oblation_n or_o thing_n offer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o thing_n he_o will_v shall_v be_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n as_o body_n of_o he_o her_o head_n have_v learned_a to_o offer_v herself_o by_o he_o thus_o s._n augustine_n with_o who_o also_o agree_v eusebius_n caesariensis_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o evangelicall_a demonstration_n say_v christ_n labour_v for_o all_o our_o salvation_n offer_v as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a victim_n and_o a_o singular_a sacrifice_n unto_o his_o father_n that_o we_o may_v offer_v ourselves_o to_o god_n himself_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n so_o that_o among_o the_o other_o end_n why_o christ_n our_o lord_n institute_v a_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n this_o be_v one_o that_o we_o may_v together_o with_o he_o offer_v ourselves_o whereupon_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a in_o his_o 37._o homily_n upon_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o his_o dialogue_n and_o 59_o chapter_n say_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o when_o we_o offer_v sacrifice_n that_o we_o immolate_v ourselves_o to_o god_n in_o contrition_n of_o heart_n for_o that_o we_o who_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n aught_o to_o imitate_v that_o which_o we_o do_v for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v true_o a_o host_n for_o we_o to_o god_n when_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v ourselves_o a_o host_n for_o which_o cause_n when_o bishopp_n make_v priest_n they_o say_v unto_o they_o as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o pontifical_a understand_v that_o which_o you_o do_v imitate_v that_o which_o you_o handle_v to_o this_o end_n that_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n you_o procure_v to_o mortify_v your_o member_n from_o all_o vice_n and_o concupiscence_n thus_o these_o father_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n have_v institute_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o we_o may_v in_o offer_v it_o also_o offer_v ourselves_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n by_o a_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n 8._o in_o like_a manner_n our_o lord_n also_o take_v the_o chalice_n chalice_n sacrifice_n institute_v in_o the_o chalice_n after_o supper_n say_v even_o as_o protestant_n translate_v this_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o your_o heart_n to_o god_n as_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_a law_n which_o be_v type_n and_o sign_n of_o this_o and_o end_v when_o this_o new_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v bring_v in_o and_o institute_v by_o our_o lord_n as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o many_o and_o diverse_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v sign_n of_o this_o true_a sacrifice_n this_o one_o sacrifice_n be_v figurative_o foretell_v by_o many_o sacrifice_n as_o if_o one_o thing_n shall_v be_v deliver_v with_o variety_n testament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o word_n lest_o in_o be_v much_o commend_v it_o may_v grow_v iedious_a to_o this_o chief_a &_o true_a sacrifice_n all_o the_o false_a sacrifice_n have_v give_v place_n whereupon_o s._n chrisostom_n upon_o 26._o the_o chapter_n of_o s._n matthew_n say_v as_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v sheep_n and_o calf_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n see_v the_o new_a have_v our_o lord_n blood_n for_o which_o cause_n after_o that_o our_o lord_n have_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o administrate_v communion_n in_o his_o blood_n he_o present_o command_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n without_o shed_v it_o to_o god_n or_o offer_v it_o in_o sacrifice_n say_v this_o do_v you_o the_o same_o that_o he_o then_o do_v as_o offen_n as_o you_o shall_v drink_v for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 15._o whole_o forbid_v they_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o without_o offer_v it_o first_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n least_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v drink_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o and_o not_o of_o drink_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o common_a union_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o god_n 9_o that_o this_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v not_o only_o institute_v by_o our_o saviour_n for_o a_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o a_o daily_a solemn_a adoration_n of_o he_o with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n and_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o also_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n peace_n and_o society_n among_o ourselves_o s._n paul_n do_v witness_v say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o bread_n be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o be_v many_o we_o be_v one_o bread_n one_o body_n all_o that_o participate_v of_o one_o bread_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 16._o whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 57_o epistle_n allege_v this_o text_n say_v the_o head_n of_o this_o body_n the_o church_n be_v christ_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o body_n be_v commend_v in_o our_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v brief_o signify_v say_v be_v many_o we_o be_v one_o bread_n one_o body_n again_o in_o his_o 59_o epistle_n and_o 5._o question_n he_o say_v all_o thing_n be_v vow_v which_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n especial_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o holy_a altar_n by_o which_o sacrament_n be_v preach_v and_o declare_v a_o other_o our_o great_a vow_n whereby_o we_o vow_v to_o remain_v in_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o conjunction_n or_o close_v together_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 10._o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n all_o those_o who_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o they_o shall_v do_v offer_v to_o god_n the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o thereby_o as_o s._n augustine_n here_o say_v do_v preach_v and_o declare_v agreat_a vow_n or_o promise_n which_o be_v to_o remain_v unite_a member_n in_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 24._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v o_o my_o belove_a let_v we_o have_v care_n of_o the_o brethren_n and_o let_v we_o preserve_v that_o unity_n with_o they_o which_o be_v in_o we_o in_o our_o own_o body_n for_o unto_o this_o that_o terrible_a and_o most_o fearful_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v call_v we_o
to_o preserve_v in_o man_n the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o unity_n and_o concord_n among_o themselves_o that_o not_o only_o the_o faithful_a in_o all_o age_n use_v it_o to_o this_o effect_n and_o purpose_n but_o also_o all_o the_o gentill_n and_o heathen_n who_o be_v not_o sacrifice_n all_o the_o gentill_n the_o atheist_n and_o epicure_n except_v offer_v sacrifice_n atheist_n or_o epicure_n and_o deny_v not_o god_n or_o god_n or_o he_o or_o their_o providence_n over_o mankind_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v by_o experience_n for_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o act_n deed_n book_n history_n or_o relation_n of_o such_o gentill_n or_o ancient_n or_o modern_a heathen_a people_n who_o be_v at_o this_o day_n or_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n in_o former_a age_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a as_o the_o babylonians_n assyrian_n chaldean_n cananit_n philistian_o egyptian_n ethiopian_n greek_n roman_n saracen_n turck_n ancient_a or_o modern_a heathen_a people_n of_o europe_n asia_n africa_n and_o america_n who_o all_o universal_o have_v and_o have_v priest_n altar_n and_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o witness_v all_o the_o author_n who_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o these_o nation_n who_o testimony_n in_o this_o short_a treatise_n will_v be_v to_o long_o to_o set_v down_o and_o therefore_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n unto_o their_o own_o writing_n as_o unto_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 18_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n athanasius_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o gentiles_n and_o epiphanius_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o heresy_n unto_o cicero_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o god_n herodotus_n diodorus_n siculus_n etc._n etc._n 2._o and_o for_o late_a writer_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n unto_o geraldus_fw-la of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o gentiles_n christopher_n richerius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o turckes_n septem_fw-la castrensis_fw-la of_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o turk_n samuel_n purchas_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o religion_n observe_v in_o all_o age_n lewis_n godfrey_n in_o his_o 12._o tome_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o east_n indies_n and_o other_o whereupon_o plato_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o 10._o dialogue_n in_o his_o book_n of_o law_n say_v necessity_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o gentiles_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o their_o necessity_n it_o have_v always_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o danger_n or_o want_v any_o thing_n or_o when_o their_o substance_n increase_v to_o consecrate_v something_o to_o the_o god_n and_o vow_v sacrifice_n with_o who_o agree_v s._n thomas_n in_o his_o 2._o 2._o quest_n 85._o art_n 1._o say_v in_o every_o age_n and_o among_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n have_v always_o be_v offer_v up_o of_o sacrifice_n insomuch_o that_o among_o all_o the_o heathen_a people_n that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n or_o heretofore_o have_v be_v atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v there_o be_v not_o nor_o have_v there_o be_v find_v any_o so_o impious_a and_o barbarous_a in_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o have_v not_o or_o yet_o do_v not_o offer_v some_o kind_n of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a over_o they_o which_o be_v so_o true_a that_o even_o at_o this_o day_n we_o may_v say_v unto_o the_o atheist_n epicure_n and_o puritan_n of_o this_o age_n who_o have_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o plutark_o in_o his_o book_n against_o coletes_n say_v unto_o the_o epicure_n coletes_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n if_o you_o travel_v throughout_o the_o world_n well_o you_o may_v find_v city_n without_o sacrifice_n no_o city_n without_o sacrifice_n wall_n without_o writing_n without_o king_n not_o people_v or_o inhabit_v without_o house_n without_o money_n or_o man_n or_o desirous_a of_o coin_n who_o know_v not_o what_o theater_n or_o public_a hall_n of_o bodily_a exercise_n mean_v but_o never_o be_v there_o or_o ever_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o one_o city_n see_v which_o use_v no_o sacrifice_n either_o to_o obtain_v good_a blessing_n or_o to_o avoid_v heavy_a curse_n or_o calamity_n moreover_o the_o offer_v up_o of_o sacrifice_n unto_o some_o god_n be_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n so_o high_o esteem_v among_o the_o heathen_n that_o if_o any_o man_n commit_v any_o wickedness_n or_o impiety_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o god_n he_o be_v to_o suffer_v death_n for_o his_o offence_n as_o witness_v plato_n in_o the_o aforesaid_a dialogue_n say_v if_o any_o shall_v commit_v wicked_a impiety_n or_o shall_v offend_v either_o in_o his_o private_a or_o public_a sacrificinge_n worship_n of_o the_o god_n he_o shall_v be_v condemn_v to_o death_n as_o one_o who_o sacrifice_v impure_o 3_o this_o be_v the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o preserve_v in_o man_n the_o memory_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o unity_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o themselves_o and_o all_o prudent_a law_n be_v chief_o institute_v to_o the_o same_o end_n we_o never_o read_v of_o any_o prudent_a lawgiver_n or_o sacrifice_n all_o the_o prudent_a lawgiver_n institute_v the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n prince_n though_o a_o infidel_n or_o heathen_a that_o give_v law_n unto_o any_o commonwealth_n or_o found_v a_o monarchy_n but_o he_o institute_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o some_o suppose_a god_n as_o cham_n founder_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o egyptian_n chus_n founder_v of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o ethiopian_n nemrod_n belus_n founder_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o babylonians_n ninus_n founder_v of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o assyrian_n jon_n cecrops_n deucalion_n lycurgus_n lawgivers_n to_o the_o grecian_n numa_n pompilius_n the_o first_o and_o principalst_a statesman_n among_o the_o roman_n all_o which_o noble_a and_o renown_a personage_n to_o use_v plutarcks_n word_n in_o his_o book_n against_o coletes_n make_v the_o people_n devout_a affectionate_a and_o zealous_a to_o the_o god_n in_o prayer_n oath_n oracle_n prophecy_n and_o sacrifice_n either_o to_o obtain_v good_a blessing_n or_o to_o avert_v heavy_a curse_n and_o calamity_n insomuch_o as_o plato_n in_o the_o 8._o dialogue_n of_o his_o book_n of_o law_n beside_o solemn_a sacrifice_n athens_n plato_n ordain_v that_o 365_o sacrifice_n shall_v daily_o be_v offer_v in_o athens_n use_v upon_o great_a festival_n day_n ordain_v that_o in_o the_o city_n of_o athens_n there_o shall_v be_v 365._o sacrifice_n offer_v every_o day_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v always_o be_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o some_o of_o the_o god_n for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o good_n 4._o lycurgus_n the_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o lacedaemonian_n lycurgus_n the_o frugal_a sacrifice_n of_o lycurgus_n ordain_v spare_v and_o frugal_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o god_n make_v answer_v as_o plutark_o affirm_v in_o his_o life_n that_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o the_o god_n may_v never_o fail_v among_o they_o and_o this_o these_o heathen_a man_n and_o infidel_n do_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o dictate_v unto_o they_o that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o constant_a unity_n or_o civil_a society_n or_o religion_n among_o they_o but_o by_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o true_a or_o suppose_a god_n or_o god_n thereby_o to_o express_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o soul_n and_o acknowledge_v visible_o a_o union_n in_o one_o supreme_a sovereign_n and_o among_o themselves_o moreover_o the_o gentile_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o gentill_n communicate_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n heathen_a people_n not_o only_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o their_o god_n but_o also_o do_v eat_v or_o communicate_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n to_o mantayn_v a_o more_o firm_a unity_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o god_n as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v say_v the_o isralits_n fall_v in_o to_o idolatry_n offer_v holocau_v and_o pacifique_a host_n to_o the_o molcen_n calf_n and_o the_o people_n sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v exod._n 32._o 6._o afer_fw-la the_o manner_n of_o the_o egyptian_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v who_o chief_a god_n in_o their_o time_n be_v a_o calf_n as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n again_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n fornicate_v with_o the_o daughter_n of_o moab_n who_o call_v they_o to_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o adore_v their_o god_n numb_a 25._o 5._o and_o because_o the_o gentill_n and_o
sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o bestow_v it_o upon_o the_o image_n of_o a_o corruptible_a man_n or_o idolatry_n the_o beginning_n of_o idolatry_n of_o fowl_n or_o fou-r_a footed-beast_n and_o so_o idolatry_n begin_v as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n say_v idol_n neither_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n neither_o shall_v they_o be_v forever_o for_o by_o the_o vainglory_n of_o man_n they_o enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o shall_v they_o come_v short_o unto_o a_o end_n for_o a_o father_n afflict_v with_o untimely_a mourning_n when_o he_o have_v make_v a_o picture_n of_o his_o child_n soontaken_v away_o now_o honour_v he_o as_o a_o god_n which_o be_v then_o a_o dead_a man_n and_o deliver_v unto_o those_o who_o be_v under_o he_o ceremony_n and_o sacrifice_n wisd_v 14._o 15._o 3._o thus_o as_o the_o scripture_n do_v witness_v begin_v idolatry_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o passionate_a affection_n of_o a_o father_n who_o sorrow_v for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o child_n cause_v a_o picture_n to_o be_v make_v in_o his_o memory_n and_o ordain_v sacrifice_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o it_o by_o his_o servant_n and_o follower_n so_o ninus_n erect_v the_o statue_n of_o his_o father_n belus_n nembroth_n grandchild_n to_o cham_n and_o first_o king_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o babylon_n and_o cause_v sacrifice_n which_o under_o penalty_n of_o death_n be_v due_a only_o unto_o god_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o it_o by_o the_o babylonians_n as_o witness_v berosus_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n s._n cyrill_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n against_o julian_n s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o osee_n and_o s._n ambrose_n upon_o the_o 1._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n which_o the_o scripture_n also_o signify_v say_v afterward_o that_o idolatry_n be_v thus_o begin_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a by_o the_o passionate_a affection_n of_o a_o father_n towards_o his_o child_n decease_v in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o wicked_a custom_n prevayl_v this_o error_n be_v keep_v increase_v by_o what_o mean_v idolatry_n increase_v as_o a_o law_n and_o grave_v thing_n be_v worship_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o king_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o the_o worship_v of_o these_o the_o singular_a diligence_n of_o the_o artificer_n help_v they_o forward_o that_o be_v ignorant_a for_o he_o willing_a to_o please_v he_o that_o enterteyn_v he_o use_v all_o his_o skill_n to_o make_v the_o similitude_n of_o the_o best_a fastion_n and_o so_o the_o multitude_n allure_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o work_n take_v he_o now_o for_o a_o god_n which_o a_o little_a before_o be_v but_o honour_v as_o a_o man_n and_o this_o be_v occasion_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n for_o man_n serve_v either_o passionate_a affection_n or_o king_n do_v ascribe_v unto_o stone_n and_o stock_n the_o incommunicable_a name_n of_o god_n wis_v 14._o 16._o whereupon_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o vanity_n of_o idol_n say_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o god_n which_o the_o common-people_n worship_n for_o in_o time_n past_a they_o be_v king_n who_o in_o memory_n of_o their_o royalty_n after_o death_n be_v worship_v of_o their_o kindred_n and_o servant_n and_o so_o have_v temple_n erect_v unto_o their_o honour_n and_o their_o statue_n be_v erect_v to_o preserve_v the_o resemblance_n of_o the_o countenance_n of_o the_o dead_a unto_o which_o they_o immolate_a host_n and_o appoint_a festival_n day_n in_o their_o honour_n afterward_o they_o be_v esteem_v holy_a which_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v only_o use_v for_o their_o consolation_n 4._o from_o the_o idol_n belus_n or_o bel_n of_o the_o babylonians_n arise_v by_o degree_n the_o idol_n of_o baal_n baalim_fw-la belzebub_n etc._n the_o original_n of_o the_o idol_n belus_n baal_n baalim_fw-la etc._n etc._n belfegor_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v diverse_a stand_a image_n of_o the_o same_o belus_n their_o name_n only_o change_v according_a to_o the_o diverse_a language_n of_o the_o nation_n as_o witness_v s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o 2._o of_o osee_n unto_o which_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v say_v they_o immolate_a to_o baalim_fw-la osee_n 11._o 2._o they_o do_v sacrifice_n to_o baal_n and_o offer_v drink_v offering_n to_o strange_a god_n to_o provoke_v i_o to_o wrath_n jerem._n 32._o 29._o they_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o idol_n of_o canaan_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v wrath_n with_o fury_n against_o his_o people_n psal_n 105._o because_o they_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o idol_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o the_o true_a god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n unto_o he_o which_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o creature_n whereupon_o when_o manue_n the_o father_n of_o samson_n will_v have_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o a_o angel_n the_o angel_n say_v if_o thou_o will_v offer_v holocaust_n offer_v it_o unto_o our_o lord_n for_o manue_n know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n judge_n 13._o 15._o 5._o in_o like_a manner_n s._n augustin_n in_o his_o 49._o epist_n say_v the_o holy_a angel_n do_v not_o approve_v of_o sacrifice_n but_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o true_a wisdom_n and_o true_a religion_n be_v offer_v only_o unto_o that_o true_a god_n who_o they_o serve_v in_o holy_a society_n whereupon_o in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n he_o affirm_v that_o many_o thing_n either_o by_o to_o sacrifice_n no_o man_n as_o man_n ever_o challenge_v sacrifice_n much_o humility_n or_o pestilent_a flattery_n be_v usurp_v from_o divine_a worship_n and_o translate_v unto_o human_a honour_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o these_o man_n unto_o who_o such_o honour_n be_v give_v be_v notwithstanding_o still_o esteem_v man_n although_o they_o be_v call_v worshipful_a venerable_a and_o if_o much_o honourable_a but_o who_o ever_o think_v that_o sacrifice_n ought_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o he_o who_o either_o he_o do_v know_v or_o esteem_v or_o feign_a to_o be_v a_o god_n and_o moreover_o in_o his_o 49._o epist_n and_o 3._o quest_n he_o say_v the_o true_a and_o holy_a scripture_n do_v admonish_v we_o that_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o only_a true_a god_n &_o not_o unto_o any_o corporal_a or_o spiritual_a creature_n who_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o pious_a they_o be_v and_o subject_n to_o god_n by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o they_o refuse_v to_o have_v that_o kind_n of_o honour_n do_v unto_o they_o which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n thus_o s._n augustin_n whereupon_o s._n thomas_n in_o his_o 2._o 2._o quest_n 81._o art_n 2._o say_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v mind_n outward_a sacrifice_n do_v express_v the_o inward_a of_o the_o hart_n and_o mind_n exterior_o offer_v do_v signify_v the_o inward_a spiritual_a sacrifice_n wherewith_o the_o soul_n offer_v herself_o unto_o god_n as_o unto_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o creation_n and_o end_n of_o her_o happiness_n and_o therefore_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v spiritual_a sacrifice_n only_o unto_o god_n so_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v exterior_a sacrifice_n only_o unto_o he_o this_o also_o we_o see_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o every_o commonwealth_n that_o they_o honour_v their_o prince_n with_o some_o particular_a sign_n which_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o any_o other_o be_v treason_n 6._o for_o this_o cause_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o do_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o any_o creature_n whatsoever_o as_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 27._o chapter_n of_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n witness_v say_v who_o saint_n sacrifice_n never_o offer_v to_o saint_n ever_o hear_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o faithful_a stand_v at_o the_o altar_n even_o build_v and_o adorn_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n over_o the_o body_n of_o a_o martyr_n say_v in_o his_o prayer_n i_o offer_v unto_o thou_o sacrifice_n o_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o cyprian_a when_o it_o be_v offer_v in_o memory_n of_o these_o martyr_n unto_o god_n who_o have_v earth_n why_o christ_n our_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o upon_o earth_n make_v they_o both_o man_n and_o martyr_n and_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n he_o add_v although_o jesus_n christ_n the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n may_v have_v have_v sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o as_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o his_o father_n with_o who_o he_o be_v one_o god_n yet_o live_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o choose_v rather_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n then_o to_o have_v sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o lest_o that_o thereby_o any_o one_o may_v take_v occasion_n to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o offer_v
sacrifice_n to_o some_o creature_n which_o s._n paul_n also_o signifi_v say_v unto_o those_o of_o listria_n who_o will_v have_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o he_o and_o barnaby_n why_o do_v you_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v mortal_a man_n like_v unto_o you_o act._n 14._o 11._o neither_o will_v those_o of_o listria_n though_o heathen_a man_n have_v gonn_v about_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o paul_n and_o barnaby_n but_o that_o they_o esteem_v they_o god_n say_v god_n make_v like_o man_n be_v descend_v unto_o we_o and_o they_o call_v barnaby_n jupiter_n and_o paul_n mercury_n act._n 14._o 11._o 7._o the_o reason_n why_o sacrifice_n be_v so_o only_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o creature_n first_o be_v for_o that_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o visible_a know_a sign_n of_o the_o delivery_n of_o ourselves_o unto_o he_o unto_o who_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v as_o unto_o our_o god_n as_o god_n himself_o witness_v god_n why_o sacrifice_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n say_v they_o have_v forsake_v i_o and_o have_v sacrifice_v to_o strange_a go_n 4._o king_n 22._o 17._o again_o they_o have_v forsake_v i_o and_o have_v sacrifice_v to_o strange_a god_n that_o they_o may_v provoke_v i_o to_o wrath_n 2._o paral._n 34._o 25._o and_o man_n be_v god_n by_o title_n of_o his_o creation_n conservation_n and_o redemption_n may_v not_o give_v himself_o unto_o any_o other_o as_o unto_o his_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o may_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o any_o creature_n second_o god_n create_v man_n according_a to_o his_o own_o image_n to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n he_o create_v he_o gen._n 1._o 27._o and_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v of_o the_o tribute_n money_n who_o be_v this_o image_n and_o superscription_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o caesar_n then_o he_o say_v to_o they_o render_v therefore_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n to_o cesar_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n to_o god_n matth._n 22._o whereupon_o tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o idolatry_n say_v as_o the_o image_n of_o cesar_n which_o be_v upon_o his_o coin_n be_v due_a unto_o cesar_n so_o the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o man_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n wherefore_o as_o thou_o restore_v money_n to_o cesar_n so_o thou_o ought_v to_o give_v thyself_o too_o god_n 8._o and_o for_o that_o exterior_a sacrifice_n be_v so_o proper_a unto_o god_n as_o a_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a acknowledge_v he_o for_o our_o lord_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o a_o divine_a worship_n or_o worship_n of_o latria_n due_a only_a sacrifice_n why_o the_o devil_n desire_v sacrifice_n unto_o he_o to_o signify_v the_o inward_a spiritual_a sacrifice_n wherewith_o the_o soul_n offer_v herself_o unto_o god_n as_o unto_o the_o original_a cause_n of_o her_o creation_n and_o end_n of_o her_o happiness_n therefore_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v covetous_a of_o divine_a honour_n and_o ambitious_a to_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o god_n desire_v to_o have_v external_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o as_o witness_v s._n augustin_n ambition_n the_o more_o fowl_n the_o more_o ambition_n in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o devil_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n do_v desire_v sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o then_o for_o that_o they_o know_v they_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o true_a god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a which_o porphyry_n affirm_v and_o some_o other_o think_v that_o the_o devil_n desire_v to_o have_v sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o for_o that_o he_o delight_v in_o the_o savour_n of_o dead_a carcase_n burn_v or_o roast_v but_o for_o that_o he_o delight_v in_o divine_a honour_n they_o have_v store_n of_o the_o savour_n of_o thing_n burn_v every_o where_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v desire_v more_o the_o devil_n themselves_o can_v do_v this_o for_o themselves_o but_o because_o these_o wicked_a spirit_n do_v impudent_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o to_o be_v god_n they_o be_v not_o delight_v with_o the_o smoke_n which_o procee_v from_o the_o burn_a of_o any_o body_n but_o that_o which_o procee_v from_o the_o mind_n of_o a_o humble_a suppliant_a or_o petitioner_n who_o be_v deceive_v be_v become_v subject_n unto_o they_o and_o they_o domineer_v over_o he_o stop_n in_o his_o passage_n unto_o the_o true_a god_n that_o man_n shall_v not_o become_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o god_n whilst_o he_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n unto_o another_o who_o be_v not_o god_n again_o in_o the_o 22._o chap._n of_o his_o 20._o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o manichean_a he_o say_v the_o proud_a and_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v not_o feed_v with_o the_o savour_n of_o thing_n burn_v or_o roast_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o or_o with_o smoke_n as_o many_o vain_o think_v but_o they_o be_v feed_v with_o the_o error_n of_o man_n not_o by_o a_o refection_n of_o their_o body_n but_o by_o a_o malicious_a delight_n that_o they_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n deceive_v yea_o though_o it_o be_v by_o a_o arrogant_a pride_n of_o a_o dissemble_a majesty_n and_o so_o glory_n that_o divine_a honour_n be_v exhibit_v unto_o they_o 9_o and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o visible_a outward_a action_n more_o due_a unto_o god_n or_o of_o great_a esteem_n sacrifice_n why_o our_o saviour_n redeem_v mankind_n by_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o of_o more_o worth_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n then_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n represent_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o hart_n and_o mind_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n will_v have_v donn_v that_o act_n or_o offer_v it_o to_o god_n the_o father_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n see_v he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v his_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o send_v he_o joh._n 6._o 38._o and_o god_n the_o father_n in_o he_o be_v well_o please_v matth._n 3._o 17._o but_o see_v he_o redeem_v mankind_n by_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n represent_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o hart_n and_o soul_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o of_o all_o the_o outward_a action_n of_o man_n external_a visible_a sacrifice_n represent_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o hart_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o above_o all_o other_o visible_a outward_a action_n due_a unto_o god_n which_o s._n augustin_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o 18._o chapter_n further_o witness_v say_v sacrifice_n be_v chief_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n due_a unto_o god_n chap._n v._o of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n of_o man_n exteri_fw-la or_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n alone_o 1._o all_o other_o exterior_a visible_a action_n of_o man_n except_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n may_v be_v donn_v or_o exhibit_v unto_o creature_n as_o visible_a adoration_n by_o bow_v to_o the_o ground_n kneeling_z open_v of_o the_o lip_n lift_v up_o of_o the_o hand_n etc._n etc._n have_v be_v and_o be_v give_v unto_o man_n or_o creature_n even_o by_o good_a and_o pious_a man_n as_o it_o be_v read_v of_o abraham_n creature_n adoration_n may_v be_v give_v unto_o creature_n who_o when_o he_o do_v see_v three_o man_n come_v towards_o he_o he_o run_v to_o meet_v they_o and_o adore_v to_o the_o ground_n gen._n 18._o 2._o again_o abraham_n rise_v up_o and_o adore_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o child_n of_o heth_n gen._n 23._o 7._o yet_o abraham_n be_v call_v father_n of_o the_o faithful_a rom._n 4._o and_o likewise_o when_o jacob_n do_v see_v esau_n come_v towards_o he_o going_z forward_z he_o adore_v prostrate_a to_o the_o ground_n seven_o time_n gen._n 33._o 3._o it_o be_v tell_v moses_n that_o jethro_n his_o father_n in_o law_n be_v come_v towards_o he_o moses_n go_v out_o meet_v he_o adore_v and_o kiss_v he_o exod._n 18._o 7._o the_o brethren_n of_o joseph_n the_o patriarch_n adore_v he_o prostrate_a to_o the_o ground_n gen._n 43._o 26._o josue_n fall_v flat_a to_o the_o ground_n and_o adore_v a_o angel_n jos_n 5._o 24._o nathan_n the_o prophet_n adore_a king_n david_n bow_v to_o the_o earth_n 3._o king_n 1._o 23._o 2._o god_n almighty_a speak_v of_o the_o reverence_n which_o shall_v be_v use_v towards_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o new_a law_n say_v king_n shall_v be_v they_o nure_v father_n and_o queen_n they_o nurse_v with_o countenance_n cast_v down_o towards_o the_o ground_n they_o shall_v adore_v thou_o and_o they_o shall_v lick_v up_o the_o dust_n of_o thy_o foot_n isa_n 49._o 23._o the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n adore_v adore_v elizeus_fw-la adore_v elizeus_fw-la flat_n to_o the_o ground_n 4._o king_n 2._o 15._o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v assemble_v together_o they_o
bow_v themselves_o and_o adore_v god_n and_o then_o the_o king_n adore_v david_n adore_v 1._o chronic._n 29._o 20._o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o exterior_a visible_a adoration_n by_o bow_v even_o to_o the_o ground_n may_v be_v give_v both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n and_o that_o nether_a it_o nor_o any_o other_o outward_a visible_a sign_n except_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v such_o a_o sign_n of_o divine_a worship_n or_o latria_n or_o so_o due_a unto_o god_n alone_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o man_n which_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n further_o witness_v say_v there_o be_v not_o any_o man_n to_o be_v find_v who_o dare_v say_v that_o sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o any_o but_o to_o god_n alone_o 3._o whereas_o some_o object_n that_o s._n john_n fall_v down_o answer_v the_o objection_n of_o s._n john_n adore_v answer_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o a_o angel_n to_o adore_v he_o revel_v 19_o 10._o and_o 22._o 8._o and_o the_o angel_n say_v see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n adore_v god_n this_o only_a proove_v that_o s._n john_n and_o the_o angel_n be_v humble_a the_o one_o in_o adore_v and_o the_o other_o in_o refuse_v to_o be_v adore_v and_o that_o adoration_n by_o bow_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n may_v be_v give_v unto_o both_o god_n and_o his_o creature_n unless_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o s._n john_n be_v advertise_v in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n that_o he_o be_v a_o angel_n will_v yet_o notwithstandinh_v in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n adore_v he_o again_o and_o fall_v down_o before_o his_o foot_n and_o willing_o and_o witting_o commit_v idolatry_n which_o be_v absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o text_n the_o angel_n say_v twice_o unto_o he_o i_o be_o they_o fellow_n servant_n &_o one_o of_o thy_o brethren_n yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o angel_n be_v not_o fellow-servant_n and_o brethren_n to_o idolater_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o s._n john_n by_o twice_o fall_v before_o the_o foot_n of_o a_o angel_n to_o adore_v he_o do_v no_o evil_a act_n nor_o commit_v any_o sin_n 4._o neither_o do_v the_o angel_n say_v that_o he_o refuse_v john_n the_o cause_n why_o the_o angel_n refuse_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o s._n john_n to_o be_v adore_v of_o s._n john_n because_o it_o be_v evil_a or_o only_o due_a unto_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v contrary_a unto_o all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n before_o allege_v but_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o will_v not_o have_v s._n john_n to_o adore_v he_o be_v as_o there_o he_o say_v for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n as_o contend_v with_o he_o in_o humility_n neither_o do_v the_o angel_n say_v unto_o s._n john_n adore_v god_n to_o condemn_v s._n john_n of_o ignorance_n or_o idolatry_n for_o then_o the_o angel_n will_v not_o have_v call_v he_o his_o fellow_n servant_n and_o brother_n as_o he_o do_v twice_o but_o to_o commend_v the_o eminency_n of_o his_o sanctity_n and_o greatness_n which_o be_v of_o such_o excellency_n that_o out_o of_o duty_n or_o inferiority_n he_o need_v not_o nor_o ought_v not_o to_o give_v adoration_n to_o any_o creature_n but_o to_o god_n alone_o so_o s._n john_n humble_v himself_o before_o the_o angel_n and_o fall_v twice_o before_o his_o foot_n to_o adore_v he_o the_o angel_n exalt_v he_o and_o call_v he_o fellow_n servant_n and_o brother_n fulfil_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v mat._n 23._o 12._o and_o this_o text_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n invincible_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o adore_v creature_n by_o fall_v before_o their_o foot_n see_v s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o patriarck_n and_o prophet_n and_o child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v use_v it_o and_o that_o of_o all_o outward_a visible_a adoration_n the_o adoration_n by_o offer_v of_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n alone_o 5._o faustus_n a_o heretic_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o manichean_o sacrifice_v all_o other_o outward_a visible_a woorshipp_n due_a unto_o the_o saint_n except_o sacrifice_v accuse_v the_o catholic_n christian_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n of_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n for_o honour_v martyr_n even_o as_o the_o puritan_n of_o this_o age_n do_v catholic_n at_o this_o day_n as_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o his_o 20._o book_n against_o he_o witness_v say_v faustus_n do_v calumniate_v we_o for_o the_o honour_n we_o do_v give_v unto_o the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n say_v that_o we_o have_v convert_v they_o into_o idol_n where_o unto_o he_o there_o answer_v as_o we_o now_o may_v say_v in_o his_o word_n unto_o our_o calumniator_n christian_n people_n do_v celebrate_v together_o the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n with_o a_o religious_a solemnity_n to_o stir_v up_o imitation_n to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o their_o merit_n and_o to_o be_v assist_v by_o their_o prayer_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o we_o do_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o any_o martyr_n but_o to_o the_o god_n of_o martyr_n although_o we_o erect_v altar_n in_o the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n for_o what_o bishop_n stand_v at_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v erect_v in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o body_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v be_v ever_o hear_v to_o say_v we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o cyprian_a but_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v crown_v the_o martyr_n at_o the_o memory_n of_o they_o who_o he_o have_v crown_v that_o by_o the_o admonition_n of_o the_o place_n the_o affection_n of_o our_o mind_n may_v be_v more_o inflame_v with_o charity_n towards_o those_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o imitate_v and_o towards_o god_n by_o their_o assistance_n we_o honour_v martyr_n worship_v how_o the_o martyr_n be_v to_o he_o worship_v with_o that_o worship_n of_o love_n and_o society_n wherewith_o holy_a man_n be_v worship_v in_o this_o life_n who_o heart_n be_v prepare_v to_o suffer_v the_o like_a for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n only_o we_o worship_v the_o martyr_n more_o devout_o because_o we_o may_v worship_v they_o now_o secure_o after_o their_o victory_n for_o they_o be_v now_o conqueror_n and_o enjoy_v happy_a life_n we_o may_v preach_v their_o praise_n with_o more_o confidence_n than_o we_o can_v the_o praise_n of_o those_o who_o be_v yet_o fight_v in_o this_o life_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v not_o honour_v they_o with_o that_o worship_n which_o the_o grecian_n call_v latria_n and_o in_o latin_a can_v be_v express_v in_o one_o word_n see_v it_o be_v a_o worship_n proper_o due_a unto_o divinity_n neither_o do_v we_o teach_v that_o any_o aught_o to_o be_v honour_v with_o it_o but_o only_o god_n for_o see_v that_o the_o offer_v up_o of_o sacrifice_n belong_v unto_o this_o worship_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o it_o be_v call_v their_o idolatria_fw-la who_o exhibit_v it_o unto_o idol_n in_o no_o sort_n we_o offer_v any_o such_o thing_n or_o command_v to_o be_v offer_v either_o unto_o any_o martyr_n or_o unto_o any_o holy_a soul_n or_o unto_o any_o angel_n thus_o s._n augustin_n 6._o the_o grecian_a idolater_n take_v the_o same_o exception_n against_o the_o honour_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v do_v to_o the_o saint_n decease_v which_o the_o puritan_n do_v now_o and_o theodoret_n who_o live_v about_o the_o saint_n the_o honour_n due_a unto_o the_o saint_n time_n of_o s._n augustin_n in_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o the_o cure_n of_o greek_a affection_n aswear_v they_o say_v our_o lord_n god_n have_v bring_v his_o dead_a into_o the_o temple_n in_o place_n of_o your_o god_n who_o he_o have_v deprive_v of_o their_o glory_n and_o give_v their_o honour_n unto_o his_o martyr_n for_o in_o lieu_n of_o the_o solemnity_n of_o your_o god_n pan_n diana_n jupiter_n etc._n etc._n be_v keep_v the_o feast_n of_o peter_n paul_n thomas_n sergius_n leontius_n antonius_n mauritius_n and_o other_o holy_a martyr_n and_o in_o place_n of_o that_o ancient_a pomp_n filthiness_n and_o impudence_n the_o feast_n be_v keep_v modest_o chaste_o and_o with_o much_o temperance_n now_o they_o be_v not_o besmear_v with_o wine_n nor_o make_v vain_a by_o riotous_a banquet_n nor_o dissolute_a through_o loud_a laughter_n but_o with_o attention_n and_o divine_a hymn_n and_o hear_v holy_a sermon_n etc._n etc._n but_o yet_o o_o grecian_n we_o do_v not_o offer_v host_n or_o any_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o martyr_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o among_o all_o the_o visible_a honour_n or_o worship_n which_o may_n or_o can_v be_v donn_v by_o man_n only_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n alone_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v exhibit_v or_o give_v unto_o creature_n 7._o our_o saviour_n say_v thou_o shall_v adore_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n
and_o he_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v thou_o honour_v or_o serve_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n alone_o latria_n due_a unto_o god_n alone_o luk._n 4._o 8._o where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n in_o which_o s._n luke_n write_v our_o saviour_n limit_v the_o worship_n of_o latria_n only_o unto_o god_n and_o not_o adoration_n for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v thou_o shall_v adore_v only_o the_o lord_n they_o god_n but_o he_o do_v say_v thou_o shall_v only_o honour_v or_o serve_v he_o with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n such_o as_o be_v the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n and_o leave_v adoration_n free_a to_o be_v also_o communicate_v unto_o creature_n which_o s._n augustin_n in_o his_o 61._o quest_n upon_o genesis_n observe_v say_v abraham_n rise_v up_o adore_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n gen._n 23._o 7._o the_o question_n be_v how_o be_v it_o write_v thou_o shall_v adore_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v see_v that_o abraham_n do_v so_o honour_v certain_a people_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o he_o will_v also_o adore_v they_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o same_o precept_n it_o be_v not_o say_v thou_o shall_v adore_v only_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n as_o it_o be_v say_v he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v which_o in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o such_o service_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n thus_o s._n augustine_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o adoration_n may_v be_v use_v indifferent_o upon_o occasion_n either_o to_o god_n or_o creature_n but_o not_o sacrifice_n for_o that_o of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n of_o man_n only_o visible_a sacrifice_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisibe_n sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n alone_o and_o that_o without_o visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o creature_n sacrifice_n visible_a idolatry_n can_v be_v commit_v without_o visible_a sacrifice_n exterior_a visible_a idolatry_n can_v be_v commit_v because_o it_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o creature_n as_o further_a also_o witness_v tertullian_n say_v if_o i_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o idol_n i_o will_v not_o go_v for_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o idol_n neither_o will_v i_o assist_v or_o any_o way_n help_v in_o such_o a_o work_n for_o if_o call_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o idol_n i_o shall_v stand_v by_o i_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n if_o any_o one_o shall_v give_v wine_n unto_o one_o that_o be_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o a_o idol_n or_o if_o he_o help_v in_o some_o word_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o sacrifice_n he_o shall_v be_v esteem_v as_o minister_v of_o idolatry_n thus_o tertullian_n with_o who_o agree_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n say_v there_o be_v few_o find_v who_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o command_v that_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o they_o when_o out_o of_o their_o regal_a power_n they_o may_v have_v do_v it_o but_o whosoever_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o command_v it_o by_o it_o they_o will_v have_v themselves_o to_o be_v esteem_v go_n 8._o and_o because_o that_o of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n god_n to_o what_o thing_n any_o offer_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v esteem_v as_o his_o god_n of_o man_n visible_a sacrifice_n be_v the_o only_a visible_a sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o the_o only_a visible_a honour_n worship_n or_o latria_n which_o we_o owe_v only_o unto_o god_n alone_o as_o unto_o our_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n therefore_o unto_o what_o thing_n soever_o any_o man_n offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v esteem_v and_o take_v to_o be_v his_o god_n and_o a_o act_n of_o idolatry_n though_o it_o be_v no_o image_n picture_n grave_v thing_n nor_o similitude_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n sa_v they_o have_v sacrifice_v unto_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v offer_v drink_n offering_n to_o strange_a god_n jerem._n 19_o 13._o again_o they_o sacrifice_v to_o strange_a god_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o moon_n jerem._n 44._o 15._o whereupon_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o a_o idol_n be_v not_o any_o thing_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 19_o how_o then_o come_v visible_a idolatry_n but_o by_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o which_o be_v not_o god_n as_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o same_o place_n immediate_o signifi_v say_v the_o thing_n which_o the_o heathen_n do_v immolate_a to_o devil_n they_o do_v immolate_a and_o not_o to_o god_n signify_v hereby_o that_o visible_a idolatry_n be_v only_o commit_v and_o a_o idol_n be_v only_o make_v by_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n unto_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o though_o it_o be_v as_o ugly_a as_o much_o opposite_a and_o as_o far_o contrary_a to_o god_n as_o be_v the_o devil_n whereupon_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o his_o 20._o book_n against_o faustus_n a_o heretic_n say_v the_o proud_a impiety_n of_o the_o devil_n do_v arrogate_v sacrifice_n unto_o they_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v be_v esteem_v god_n for_o sacrifice_n be_v divine_a honour_n or_o honour_n only_o due_a unto_o deity_n 9_o by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_a unto_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n of_o man_n the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n alone_o see_v that_o unto_o whatsoever_o thing_n any_o man_n offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n though_o it_o be_v unto_o as_o ugly_a a_o thing_n as_o be_v the_o devil_n yet_o he_o make_v that_o thing_n a_o idol_n or_o false_a god_n and_o commit_v idolatry_n by_o give_v divine_a honour_n or_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n which_o we_o call_v latria_n unto_o it_o which_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o his_o say_a book_n against_o the_o say_a heretic_n further_o witness_v say_v neither_o be_v it_o true_a which_o faustus_n say_v that_o our_o former_a jew_n though_o they_o have_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n immolation_n altar_n and_o priesthood_n like_o the_o gentile_n yet_o be_v they_o separate_v from_o the_o gentile_n only_o by_o the_o division_n or_o not_o admit_v of_o grave_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o idol_n for_o they_o may_v as_o many_o image_n idolatry_n with_o out_o image_n other_o do_v without_o have_v of_o idol_n immolate_a to_o tree_n and_o mountain_n and_o also_o to_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o star_n which_o if_o they_o shall_v do_v they_o shall_v serve_v with_o that_o worship_n which_o be_v call_v latria_n the_o creature_n rather_o than_o the_o creator_n and_o thereby_o have_v err_v with_o no_o small_a error_n of_o impious_a superstition_n though_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o grave_a image_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v so_o appropriate_v unto_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n that_o of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n of_o man_n it_o only_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n alone_o and_o that_o these_o sectary_n who_o have_v no_o visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v upon_o altar_n adore_v no_o god_n with_o any_o visible_a honour_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o he_o alone_o chap._n vi_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n all_o people_n who_o firm_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o his_o providence_n over_o mankind_n offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a 1._o god_n almighty_a have_v create_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o as_o a_o pious_a parent_n and_o merciful_a creature_n god_n providence_n over_o his_o creature_n father_n out_o of_o the_o storehouse_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o providence_n have_v bestow_v upon_o every_o thing_n in_o his_o creation_n a_o natural_a inclination_n propension_n or_o instinct_n to_o use_v mean_n to_o attain_v unto_o his_o end_n or_o chief_a good_a as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n even_o in_o the_o element_n tree_n plant_n stone_n whereupon_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n do_v govern_v wisd_v 14._o 3._o and_o the_o function_n or_o office_n of_o providence_n be_v as_o aristotle_n lastend_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v to_o direct_v man_n unto_o their_o lastend_v say_v in_o the_o 6._o of_o his_o ethic_n and_o s._n thomas_n in_o his_o 1._o part_n quest_n 22._o art_n 1._o to_o order_v or_o direct_a thing_n to_o their_o end_n and_o the_o end_n and_o happy_a life_n of_o man_n be_v god_n as_o witness_v the_o
scripture_n exod._n 33._o 19_o joh._n 11._o 15._o and_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a external_a sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n only_o chief_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o soul_n unto_o he_o and_o a_o holy_a sign_n of_o our_o acknowledge_a god_n for_o our_o lord_n god_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n what_o reasonable_a man_n can_v deny_v that_o god_n out_o of_o his_o providence_n towards_o mankind_n in_o direct_v he_o as_o a_o reasonable_a creature_n unto_o his_o end_n and_o chief_a good_n have_v also_o give_v unto_o all_o mankind_n a_o natural_a inclination_n propension_n and_o instinct_n to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o he_o thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o god_n honour_v he_o with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n and_o profess_v the_o union_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o he_o their_o last_o end_n and_o chief_a good_a unless_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o god_n in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n and_o in_o direct_v of_o man_n unto_o their_o last_o end_n have_v use_v less_o goodness_n and_o providence_n than_o he_o have_v towards_o tree_n plant_n and_o stone_n with_o be_v absurd_a see_v that_o his_o mercy_n towards_o man_n be_v above_o all_o his_o work_n 2._o from_o this_o instinct_n it_o do_v proceed_v that_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n while_o man_n live_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n without_o writing_n or_o any_o other_o ordinary_a direction_n or_o law_n more_o than_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n proceed_v from_o reason_n with_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n the_o faithful_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n use_v to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n as_o abel_n no_o melchisedec_n abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n and_o job_n who_o all_o offer_v exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n before_o any_o other_o law_n be_v know_v or_o publish_v but_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n gentile_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o gentile_n proceed_v from_o reason_n and_o be_v as_o s._n paul_n say_v write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o gentile_n rom._n 2._o 15._o and_o be_v as_o s._n hierom._n upon_o the_o 24._o of_o isai_n say_v give_v unto_o all_o nation_n before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v write_v which_o be_v not_o give_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n until_o the_o year_n 2544._o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o annal_n of_o torniellus_n 3._o neither_o can_v the_o defect_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o cain_n be_v displease_v unto_o god_n as_o they_o be_v gen._n 4._o 5._o if_o cain_n have_v not_o be_v oblige_v by_o some_o law_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v rom._n 4._o 15._o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o prevarication_n nature_n cain_n sacrifice_n displease_v because_o it_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n or_o offence_n nor_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n and_o no_o be_v grateful_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n as_o they_o be_v gen._n 4._o and_o 8._o 21._o but_o for_o that_o they_o be_v conformable_a unto_o some_o law_n and_o right_a for_o god_n be_v not_o a_o god_n that_o will_v iniquity_n psal_n 5._o 5._o yet_o before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v give_v which_o be_v not_o until_o the_o year_n 2544._o there_o be_v no_o other_o law_n as_o all_o man_n nature_n cain_n and_o abel_n bind_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n by_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n grant_v but_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n wherefore_o see_v that_o for_o those_o 2544._o year_n the_o faithful_a offer_a visible_a sacrifice_n according_a to_o some_o law_n and_o there_o be_v no_o law_n but_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n proceed_v from_o right_a reason_n which_o we_o call_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n it_o manifest_o follow_v that_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n by_o the_o law_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n 4._o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o cain_n and_o abel_n in_o the_o teacher_n cain_n and_o abel_n offer_v sacrifice_n without_o a_o master_n or_o teacher_n begin_n of_o world_n have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o master_n or_o teacher_n to_o tell_v or_o teach_v they_o in_o general_a that_o they_o ought_v to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n because_o they_o be_v teach_v it_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o their_o conscience_n light_n of_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n give_v from_o above_o unto_o all_o mankind_n as_o witness_v s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 18_o homily_n upon_o genesis_n sayinge_v cain_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n offer_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n consider_v how_o the_o builder_n of_o nature_n in_o graft_a in_o man_n the_o science_n of_o conscience_n for_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o who_o bring_v cain_n to_o this_o knowledge_n no_o other_o but_o the_o knowledge_n which_o be_v in_o a_o conscious_a mind_n he_o offer_v say_v the_o scripture_n sacrifice_n to_o god_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o he_o do_v know_v and_o he_o do_v clear_o know_v that_o it_o be_v convenient_a or_o meet_v to_o offer_v something_o of_o his_o possession_n to_o god_n not_o that_o god_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v he_o but_o that_o he_o who_o enjoy_v such_o a_o be-benefit_n from_o he_o shall_v show_v his_o gratitude_n and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o homily_n he_o say_v cain_n have_v no_o teacher_n nor_o abel_n a_o prompter_n or_o councillor_n to_o teach_v they_o to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n but_o they_o be_v both_o move_v to_o this_o oblation_n by_o the_o dictamen_fw-la of_o their_o conscience_n and_o by_o wisdom_n give_v from_o above_o unto_o mankind_n in_o like_a manner_n s._n clement_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 6._o book_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n affirm_v that_o abel_n no_o abraham_n and_o other_o after_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n only_o move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n whereupon_o eusebius_n cesariensis_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o evangelicall_a demonstration_n say_v the_o ancient_a friend_n of_o god_n abel_n no_o abraham_n etc._n etc._n offer_a sacrifice_n which_o say_v he_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v to_o have_v be_v a_o rash_a invention_n or_o a_o thing_n begunn_v after_o a_o human_a manner_n but_o rather_o inspire_v from_o above_o sed_fw-la devino_fw-la potius_fw-la nutu_fw-la insinuatum_fw-la for_o which_o cause_n tertullian_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n against_o the_o jew_n say_v la_o levite_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n before_o the_o leviticall_a la_o before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v give_v which_o be_v write_v in_o table_n of_o stone_n there_o be_v a_o law_n not_o write_v which_o be_v natural_o understand_v and_o keep_v by_o the_o father_n for_o from_o whence_o be_v no_n find_v just_a if_o the_o natural_a justice_n of_o the_o law_n do_v not_o go_v before_o he_o from_o whence_o be_v abraham_n esteem_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n if_o not_o by_o the_o equity_n or_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n how_o come_v melchisedec_n to_o be_v call_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n if_o there_o be_v not_o levites_n before_o the_o leviticall_a law_n who_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n thus_o tertullian_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o man_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o dictamen_fw-la of_o their_o conscience_n without_o a_o master_n or_o teacher_n or_o write_v law_n be_v in_o general_a sufficient_o instruct_v to_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o they_o may_v attain_v unto_o the_o union_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o he_o who_o be_v their_o last_o end_n and_o chief_a good_a whereupon_o origen_n in_o his_o first_o book_n upon_o job_n say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n no_o abraham_n melchisedec_n and_o job_n priest_n by_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n nature_n there_o be_v priest_n who_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o that_o office_n by_o the_o prescript_n of_o any_o write_a law_n but_o teach_v and_o instruct_v to_o do_v it_o by_o natural_a wisdom_n after_o this_o manner_n no_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o priesthood_n after_o this_o manner_n abraham_n and_o melchisedec_n be_v priest_n and_o also_o after_o they_o job_n himself_o have_v the_o office_n of_o priesthood_n thus_o origen_n with_o who_o also_o agree_v s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o circumcision_n say_v though_o many_o of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v judge_v circumcision_n which_o the_o jew_n use_v to_o be_v absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a yet_o follow_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n they_o retain_v the_o instrument_n of_o expiation_n or_o cleanse_v from_o sin_n and_o do_v immolate_a victimes_o burn_v fat_a and_o
plant_v peace_n and_o preach_v as_o s._n paul_n say_v peace_n to_o they_o that_o be_v far_o of_o and_o peace_n to_o they_o that_o be_v nigh_o ephe._n 2._o 17._o and_o god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o dissension_n but_o of_o peace_n 1._o cor._n 14._o 33._o 6._o four_o adam_n and_o his_o son_n live_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o institute_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n no_o other_o law_n be_v then_o publish_v or_o know_v as_o all_o divine_v general_o nature_n sacrifice_n institute_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n hold_v and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v insert_v and_o ingraft_v by_o god_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v rom._n 2._o 15._o in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n for_o they_o to_o follow_v as_o a_o rule_n of_o justice_n and_o a_o instinct_n of_o nature_n proceed_v from_o reason_n as_o a_o everlasting_a covenant_n between_o god_n and_o man_n isa_n 24._o 5._o certain_a it_o be_v that_o our_o immutable_a the_o law_n of_o nature_n immutable_a saviour_n can_v not_o take_v away_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n from_o among_o man_n and_o move_v they_o to_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o change_v it_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n see_v that_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v he_o continue_v faithful_a and_o can_v deny_v himself_o 2._o tim._n 2._o 13._o to_o change_v his_o divine_a decree_n and_o alter_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n in_o all_o man_n or_o change_v the_o natural_a divine_a instinct_n which_o he_o have_v engraft_v in_o all_o man_n to_o follow_v even_o from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n which_o lactantius_n in_o his_o 6_o book_n and_o 8._o chapter_n of_o divine_a institution_n observe_v out_o of_o the_o 3._o book_n of_o cicero_n commonwealth_n say_v cicero_n almost_o with_o a_o divine_a voice_n have_v in_o these_o word_n describe_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n say_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v right_a reason_n agreeable_a nature_n description_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o nature_n spread_v among_o all_o man_n constant_a and_o everlasting_a to_o this_o law_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o add_v any_o thing_n or_o to_o take_v away_o thus_o lactantius_n and_o cicero_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n wherefore_o see_v that_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n come_v not_o to_o take_v it_o away_o but_o to_o institute_v it_o in_o better_a term_n with_o he_o do_v when_o take_v bread_n he_o give_v thanks_o and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o chalice_n also_o after_o he_o have_v sup_v say_v this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o to_o god_n this_o do_v you_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v drink_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o wherefore_o we_o may_v just_o complayn_v of_o these_o who_o persecute_v the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o word_n with_o the_o prophet_n isaie_v use_v when_o he_o complain_v of_o the_o jew_n for_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n say_v the_o earth_n be_v infect_v with_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o because_o they_o have_v transgress_v the_o law_n change_v right_o dissipate_v the_o everlasting_a covenant_n isa_n 24._o 5._o 7._o five_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n promise_v that_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n sacrifice_n to_o last_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n world_n say_v and_o in_o the_o half_a of_o the_o week_n shall_v the_o host_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n fail_v and_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o temple_n the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n daniel_n 9_o 27._o again_o the_o continual_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o dan._n 12._o 11._o and_o our_o saviour_n himself_o set_v down_o the_o time_n when_o this_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v and_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o host_n nor_o sacrifice_n offer_v to_o god_n in_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n say_v and_o when_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n etc._n etc._n immediate_o afther_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n the_o sun_n shall_v be_v darken_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v light_n and_o the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n math._n 24._o and_o so_o forth_o describe_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n signify_v that_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offer_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n until_o a_o little_a before_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n 8._o six_o god_n almighty_a promise_v say_v i_o will_v send_v of_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o the_o gentile_n into_o the_o sea_n into_o africa_n and_o lydia_n into_o italy_n and_o greece_n to_o the_o land_n far_o of_o to_o they_o that_o have_v not_o sacrifice_n priest_n and_o levits_n shall_v be_v alway_v in_o the_o church_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n hear_v of_o i_o and_o have_v not_o see_v my_o glory_n and_o they_o shall_v show_v forth_o my_o glory_n to_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o shall_v bring_v all_o your_o brethren_n of_o all_o nation_n a_o gift_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v take_v of_o they_o to_o be_v priest_n and_o levit_n say_v our_o lord_n because_o as_o a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n which_o i_o make_v to_o stand_v before_o i_o say_v our_o lord_n so_o shall_v your_o seed_n stand_v and_o your_o name_n isa_n 66._o 19_o where_o we_o see_v that_o god_n almighty_a promise_v to_o make_v priest_n and_o levit_n who_o office_n be_v to_o offer_v and_o assist_v at_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o gentiles_n convert_v unto_o christianity_n and_o that_o their_o seed_n shall_v not_o fail_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n whereupon_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o his_o 20._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n allege_v this_o place_n say_v god_n compare_v the_o convert_v gentile_n as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o similitude_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n offer_v unto_o he_o their_o host_n or_o sacrifice_n with_o psalm_n in_o his_o house_n or_o temple_n which_o the_o church_n do_v now_o every_o where_n and_o have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v take_v of_o they_o priest_n and_o levit_n for_o himself_o which_o now_o we_o see_v do_v for_o now_o priest_n be_v not_o by_o succession_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n but_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n where_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n thus_o s._n august_n 9_o seventh_o god_n promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n say_v behold_v the_o day_n shall_v come_v say_v our_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v up_o the_o good_a word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o name_n they_o shall_v call_v he_o the_o lord_n of_o our_o just_a one_o &c_n &c_n and_o of_o priest_n and_o levit_n there_o shall_v not_o faill_n from_o before_o my_o face_n a_o man_n to_o offer_n holocau_v and_o to_o burn_v sacrifice_n and_o to_o kill_v victimes_o all_o day_n jerem._n 33._o 14._o whereupon_o theodoret_n in_o his_o interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n say_v we_o see_v the_o event_n of_o this_o prophecy_n for_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v give_v according_a to_o the_o divine_a promise_n the_o priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v also_o give_v which_o whosoever_o have_v obtain_v do_v offerr_v unto_o god_n reasonable_a sacrifice_n 10._o eight_o s._n paul_n command_v all_o christian_n sacrifice_n no_o communion_n without_o sacrifice_n say_v as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o chalice_n you_o shall_v show_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o come_v 1._o cor._n 11._o 26._o and_o our_o lord_n die_v offer_v up_o himself_o to_o god_n in_o a_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o our_o adversary_n do_v grant_v whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v last_v until_o the_o late_a day_n 11._o nine_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o thing_n only_o and_o chief_o above_o all_o thing_n due_a unto_o god_n and_o give_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o
our_o lord_n god_n and_o maintain_v our_o union_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o ourselves_o and_o antichrist_n at_o his_o come_n as_o s._n paul_n faith_n shall_v exalt_v himself_o sacrifice_n antichrist_n shall_v take_v away_o public_a sacrifice_n above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n 2._o thes_n 2._o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o antechrist_n shall_v not_o only_o as_o our_o saviour_n foretell_v in_o the_o 24._o of_o matthew_n and_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n in_o the_o 9_o and_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o prophecy_n take_v away_o the_o offering_z of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o the_o true_a god_n but_o also_o from_o all_o idol_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n public_o offer_v unto_o any_o idol_n or_o devil_n but_o unto_o he_o only_o who_o will_v secret_o worship_v the_o devil_n mahuzim_n daniel_n 11._o and_o so_o he_o shall_v public_o exalt_v himself_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v public_o worship_v whereupon_o s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o heresy_n and_o 25._o chapter_n say_v he_o shall_v put_v down_o idol_n to_o persuade_v other_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o to_o magnify_v himself_o who_o will_v be_v a_o idol_n that_o will_v have_v in_o it_o the_o diverse_a error_n of_o all_o other_o idol_n 12._o moreover_o s._n ireneus_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o cruelty_n fly_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o faithful_a who_o offer_v sacrifice_n shall_v be_v force_v to_o fly_v of_o antichrist_n in_o put_v down_o the_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o heresy_n and_o 25._o chapter_n say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n the_o saint_n who_o offer_v pure_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n shall_v be_v force_v to_o fly_v away_o and_o in_o the_o half_a of_o the_o week_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o host_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n shall_v be_v unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o time_n with_o who_o also_o agree_v hippolytus_n the_o martyr_n a_o ancient_a father_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 220._o after_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n say_v in_o the_o time_n antichrist_n the_o mourning_n of_o the_o church_n after_o sacrifice_n be_v take_v away_v by_o antichrist_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v mourn_v with_o great_a sorrow_n because_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o it_o neither_o oblation_n nor_o offering_n nor_o incense_n nor_o worship_n grateful_a unto_o god_n but_o the_o sacred_a church_n shall_v be_v like_o cottage_n the_o pretions_n body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v extant_a in_o those_o day_n the_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n shall_v be_v put_v down_o sing_v of_o psalm_n shall_v cease_v and_o read_v the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o 13._o and_o the_o like_a affirm_v s._n ephrem_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o antichrist_n sa_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n at_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n shall_v mourn_v with_o great_a sorrow_n for_o that_o the_o divine_a oblation_n and_o sanctification_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o offer_v to_o god_n then_o antichrist_n sacrifice_n to_o cease_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o priesthood_n shall_v cease_v after_o three_o time_n and_o a_o half_a shall_v be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o power_n and_o work_v of_o the_o wicked_a antichrist_n and_o all_o scandal_n of_o the_o world_n benig_v consume_v as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a mouth_n then_o shall_v come_v the_o late_a day_n so_o s._n ephren_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 370._o after_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o with_o these_o aforesaid_a father_n agree_v s._n chrisostom_n in_o his_o 49._o homily_n upon_o s_n mattew_n say_v for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o by_o antichrist_n the_o christian_n fly_v from_o he_o into_o the_o desert_n there_o shall_v be_v none_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n or_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 9_o of_o daniel_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n say_v hippolytus_n put_v the_o last_o week_n in_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v god_n will_v confirm_v the_o covenant_n one_o week_n unto_o many_o and_o in_o the_o other_o three_o year_n under_o antichrist_n the_o host_n and_o sacrifice_n shall_v cease_v thus_o those_o father_n of_o the_o extirpation_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o antichrist_n 14._o now_o see_v that_o antichrist_n at_o his_o come_n as_o both_o scripture_n and_o father_n do_v testify_v shall_v put_v down_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o for_o a_o time_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n public_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o earth_n and_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o to_o come_v until_o half_a antichrist_n be_v to_o reign_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o witness_v our_o savouir_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o s._n matthew_n and_z dan._n 7._o and_o to_o reign_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a before_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o affirm_v the_o aforesaid_a hippolytus_n in_o his_o say_a book_n of_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o his_o 5._o book_n against_o heresy_n towards_o the_o end_n s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o daniel_n s._n cyril_n in_o his_o 25._o catechesis_fw-la and_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o his_o ten_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o other_o it_o be_v manifest_a end_v visible_a sacrifice_n take_v away_v the_o world_n shall_v end_v that_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offeto_o god_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v whole_o take_v away_o which_o be_v only_o chief_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n due_a unto_o god_n then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o fire_n which_o shall_v burn_v and_o destroy_v all_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v upon_o earth_n man_n cease_v to_o honour_n god_n with_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n god_n will_v destroy_v man_n out_o of_o the_o face_n earth_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o which_o upon_o earth_n he_o create_v for_o man_n so_o those_o who_o deny_v and_o persecute_v the_o offering_n torment_n those_o who_o deny_v sacrifice_n hasten_v their_o own_o torment_n up_o of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n do_v but_o hasten_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o everlasting_a damnation_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o the_o verify_n of_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o sinner_n be_v take_v in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n psal_n 9_o 17._o he_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n which_o he_o make_v psal_n 7._o 16._o and_o so_o do_v but_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n heap_n to_o himself_o wrath_n in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n rom._n 2._o 5._o which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o also_o further_o signify_v say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n joh._n 6._o 51._o as_o when_o the_o life_n of_o a_o man_n be_v quite_o take_v from_o his_o body_n the_o body_n die_v and_o by_o degree_n return_v unto_o that_o which_o it_o be_v in_o his_o first_o creation_n which_o be_v slime_n dust_n and_o ash_n so_o when_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o for_o which_o god_n spare_v the_o world_n then_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o fire_n and_o shall_v return_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n when_o god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v void_a and_o vacant_a a_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n gen._n 1._o 1._o and_o shall_v so_o remain_v until_o god_n create_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n which_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o isa_n 65._o 17._o isa_n 66._o 22._o chap._n viii_o the_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o take_v away_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o establish_v it_o in_o better_a term_n first_o for_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n sacrifice_n antichrist_n shall_v take_v away_o sacrifice_n to_o put_v down_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n as_o
i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n and_o there_o fore_a to_o make_v christ_n to_o put_v down_o all_o special_a external_a sacrifice_n be_v to_o make_v he_o antichrist_n second_o all_o other_o outward_a act_n observance_n and_o worship_n may_v be_v use_v and_o give_v unto_o man_n only_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n wherefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n destroy_v sacrifice_n take_v away_o religion_n be_v destroy_v shall_v have_v take_v away_o the_o offering_z of_o visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n he_o have_v take_v away_o religion_n for_o religion_n be_v a_o virtue_n by_o which_o man_n do_v give_v due_a worship_n and_o honour_n unto_o god_n as_o witness_v s._n thomas_n in_o his_o secunda_fw-la secundae_fw-la quaest_n 81._o art_n 1._o whereupon_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n say_v religion_n be_v destroy_v when_o there_o rest_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v for_o as_o s._n augustin_n say_v in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o his_o 20._o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n do_v belong_v ditie_n sacrifice_n be_v divine_a honour_n or_o only_o due_a to_o ditie_n unto_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n which_o be_v a_o service_n proper_o due_a unto_o divinity_n again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n and_o chapter_n he_o say_v sacrifice_n be_v divine_a honour_n wherefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v take_v away_o the_o offering_z of_o visible_a sacrifice_n he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o divine_a honour_n which_o proper_o belong_v unto_o god_n and_o have_v destroy_v religion_n 2._o three_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v take_v away_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o his_o church_n he_o have_v take_v away_o priesthood_n for_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n nation_n destroy_v sacrifice_n take_v away_o priesthood_n be_v destroy_v and_o write_v law_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n priests_z be_v ordain_v to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o nation_n for_o at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o nation_n those_o who_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o his_o providence_n over_o mankind_n know_v by_o the_o dictamen_fw-la of_o right_a reason_n and_o nature_n that_o they_o be_v to_o honour_n and_o worship_n god_n with_o visible_a sacrifice_n as_o a_o thing_n only_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n belong_v unto_o he_o as_o their_o god_n and_o creator_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n and_o also_o know_v by_o the_o same_o light_n of_o nature_n that_o every_o one_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o execute_v that_o office_n or_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o do_v it_o wherefore_o they_o choose_v some_o who_o public_o shall_v for_o the_o whole_a assembly_n or_o company_n perform_v that_o act_n whereupon_o s._n paul_n say_v every_o high_a priest_n be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o sacrifice_n heb._n 5._o 1._o again_o for_o every_o high_a priest_n be_v appoint_v to_o offer_v gift_n and_o host_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o have_v something_o that_o he_o may_v offerr_v heb._n 8._o 3._o whereby_o we_o see_v that_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v take_v away_o the_o offering_n of_o external_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n he_o have_v also_o take_v away_o priesthood_n which_o s._n ephrem_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o antichrist_n further_o witness_v say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n for_o that_o the_o divine_a oblation_n and_o sanctification_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o offer_v to_o god_n than_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o priesthood_n shall_v cease_v 3._o four_o the_o priesthood_n be_v take_v away_o destroy_v priesthood_n be_v take_v away_o the_o la_o be_v destroy_v the_o law_n also_o be_v translate_v and_o take_v away_o as_o witness_v s._n paul_n say_v the_o priesthood_n be_v translate_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n be_v make_v heb._n 7._o 12._o wherefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v not_o institute_v a_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o church_n he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o lawgiver_n as_o the_o scripture_n call_v he_o james_n 4._o 12._o but_o a_o law_n destroyer_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o his_o ●5_n book_n against_o heresy_n say_v that_o antichrist_n la_o antichrist_n without_o a_o la_o shall_v be_v with_o out_o a_o law_n as_o a_o apostata_fw-la because_o he_o shall_v take_v away_o all_o public_a visible_a sacrifice_n and_o priesthood_n on_o which_o the_o law_n depend_v for_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v require_v of_o his_o mouth_n math._n 2._o 7._o he_o that_o shall_v be_v proud_a refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v deut._n 17._o 12._o whereupon_o the_o prophet_n osee_n when_o he_o will_v express_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n nor_o mercy_n nor_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o curse_v and_o lie_v and_o manslaughter_n and_o theft_n and_o adultery_n etc._n etc._n say_v thy_o people_n be_v as_o those_o who_o gainsay_v the_o priest_n osee_n 4._o 4._o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v take_v away_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o law_n 4._o and_o for_o this_o cause_n lest_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n be_v without_o a_o religion_n or_o law_n our_o saviour_n present_o after_o he_o have_v finish_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n take_v bread_n and_o give_v thanks_o and_o brak_fw-mi and_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n luc._n 22._o 19_o and_o institute_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n and_o say_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n do_v this_o that_o be_v give_v my_o body_n to_o god_n for_o you_o in_o commemoration_n of_o i_o lest_o that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v at_o any_o time_n without_o a_o special_a visible_a exterior_a sacrifice_n religion_n and_o law_n 5._o if_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o new_a law_n have_v not_o institute_v a_o proper_a visible_a sacrifice_n wherewith_o god_n may_v be_v worship_v by_o man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o away_o when_o sacrifice_n be_v take_v away_o the_o chief_a visible_a honour_n due_a unto_o god_n be_v take_v away_o new_a law_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o old_a but_o have_v whole_o take_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o his_o church_n he_o have_v leave_v no_o external_a visible_a act_n of_o religion_n whereby_o man_n may_v have_v adore_v god_n as_o god_n and_o have_v depryve_v his_o eternal_a father_n of_o the_o great_a external_a visible_a worship_n and_o honour_n which_o he_o have_v upon_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o worship_n of_o latria_n by_o offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v absurd_a see_v our_o saviour_n come_v to_o add_v honour_n unto_o his_o etternall_a father_n and_o not_o to_o diminish_v it_o joh._n 8._o 49._o 6._o six_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o nation_n and_o write_v law_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n teach_v we_o to_o offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v his_o sovereignty_n and_o supreme_a power_n over_o we_o and_o our_o saviour_n come_v not_o to_o break_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v it_o math._n 5._o 18._o 7._o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o represent_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o come_v as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n exod._n 12._o 6._o and_o father_n as_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 61._o homily_n to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o la_o and_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v also_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o new_a law_n to_o represent_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o cross_n past_a see_v as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o our_o saviour_n come_v not_o to_o break_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v it_o and_o as_o the_o child_n old_a sacrifice_n as_o necessary_a in_o the_o new_a law_n as_o in_o the_o old_a of_o god_n who_o live_v before_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o their_o communion_n to_o represent_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o come_v and_o to_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n unto_o they_o so_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n
common_a people_n and_o not_o to_o displease_v the_o athenian_n as_o witness_v cicero_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o end_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a of_o tusculan_n quest_n and_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o god_n and_o plutark_o in_o his_o book_n against_o coletes_n a_o epicure_n wherefore_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o altogether_o incredible_a that_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v quite_o take_v away_o the_o offering_n of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o those_o who_o be_v deceive_v to_o the_o violate_v of_o religion_n contempt_n of_o god_n and_o damnation_n of_o their_o poor_a soul_n it_o will_v be_v worth_a our_o labour_n yet_o more_o exact_o to_o handle_v this_o matter_n and_o seek_v out_o how_o and_o what_o visible_a sacrifice_n our_o saviour_n appoint_v for_o his_o follower_n to_o use_v in_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n which_o by_o god_n grace_n i_o will_v do_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n chap._n ix_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o chief_a priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o 109._o psal_n and_o 4._o ver._n according_a unto_o our_o account_n earth_n christ_n priest_n hood_n forever_o of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v upon_o earth_n and_o 110._o according_a to_o the_o account_n of_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n say_v our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n this_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n s._n paul_n witness_v heb._n 5._o 6._o 10._o heb._n 6._o 20._o so_o here_o we_o have_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n not_o for_o once_o or_o for_o a_o little_a while_n as_o upon_o the_o cross_n but_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v until_o eternity_n come_v or_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v until_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n 1._o cor._n 11._o 26._o for_o these_o word_n forever_o everlasting_a be_v many_o time_n take_v for_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v or_o for_o a_o long_a time_n as_o levit._n 25._o 46._o exod._n 15._o 18._o exod._n 21._o 6._o exo._n 31._o 16._o levit._fw-la 23._o 31._o eze._n 26._o 21._o and_o s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o ezechiel_n and_o 21._o ver._n and_o upon_o the_o first_o to_o the_o gall_n and_o 4._o ver._n affirm_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n leolam_n which_o be_v here_o translate_v forever_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o other_o life_n but_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o this_o life_n or_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v endure_v etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o priesthood_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n the_o use_n of_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n up_o of_o sacrifice_n be_v as_o s._n paul_n say_v heb._n 5._o 1._o to_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o end_n of_o this_o world_n there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o any_o remission_n of_o sin_n wherefore_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n forever_o in_o the_o other_o world_n of_o eternity_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n see_v that_o in_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o other_o life_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o use_v of_o priesthood_n or_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n which_o s._n paul_n further_a signifi_v say_v where_o there_o be_v no_o remession_n of_o sin_n as_o in_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o other_o life_n now_o there_o be_v not_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n heb._n 10._o 18._o again_o s._n paul_n sayith_n every_o high_a priest_n be_v appoint_v that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o host_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o also_o have_v something_o that_o he_o may_v offer_v heb._n 8._o 3._o but_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n in_o heaven_n offer_v sacrifice_n host_n or_o gift_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n see_v that_o in_o heaven_n earthly_a sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v represent_v under_o outward_a corruptible_a material_a sign_n do_v cease_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o imperfection_n for_o in_o heaven_n be_v no_o imperfection_n 1._o cor._n 13._o 10._o 3._o and_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n say_v if_o then_o consummation_n be_v by_o the_o leviticall_a priesthood_n what_o necessity_n be_v there_o yet_o of_o a_o other_o aaron_n christ_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o not_o of_o aaron_n priest_n to_o rise_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o mechisedech_n and_o not_o to_o be_v call_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n for_o the_o priesthood_n be_v translate_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n also_o be_v make_v for_o christ_n of_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v be_v of_o another_o tribe_n of_o the_o which_o none_o attend_v on_o the_o altar_n heb._n 7._o 11._o where_o we_o earth_n chriests_n priesthood_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o earth_n see_v that_o our_o saviour_n priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v upon_o earth_n as_o the_o priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n be_v perform_v upon_o earth_n and_o the_o law_n be_v translate_v upon_o earth_n and_o the_o tribe_n and_o altar_n be_v upon_o earth_n 4._o neither_o can_v this_o prophecy_n be_v understand_v of_o cross_n this_o prophecy_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n our_o saviour_n sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n for_o that_o be_v but_o once_o offer_v heb._n 10._o 10._o and_o if_o the_o scripture_n here_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n it_o shall_v say_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o once_o and_o not_o say_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o second_o s._n paul_n say_v other_o priest_n by_o death_n be_v prohibit_v to_o continue_v but_o christ_n for_o that_o he_o continue_v forever_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n heb._n 7._o 23._o but_o as_o our_o saviour_n offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v neither_o everlasting_a nor_o immortal_a but_o mortal_a and_o dye_v and_o therefore_o as_o he_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v by_o death_n prohibit_v to_o continue_v aswell_o as_o other_o priest_n wherefore_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n because_o he_o offer_v himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n 5._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v bloody_a and_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n then_o melchisedech_n of_o which_o order_n our_o saviour_n be_v not_o as_o s._n paul_n witness_v say_v christ_n aron_n our_o saviour_n be_v not_o a_o priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n be_v not_o call_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n heb._n 7._o 11._o wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o have_v be_v any_o other_o sacrifice_n offer_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o that_o which_o among_o christian_n lord_n no_o sacrifice_n among_o christian_n but_o that_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n service_n book_n history_n chronicle_n and_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a time_n bear_v witness_n what_o christian_n man_n can_v deny_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o to_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o himself_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o this_o oath_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v in_o offer_v or_o give_v to_o god_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o his_o command_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n when_o take_v bread_n he_o give_v thanks_o and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o chalice_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v say_v this_o be_v the_o chalice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o to_o god_n luc._n 22._o do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o
against_o saunders_n say_v i_o confess_v that_o diverse_a of_o the_o old_a father_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n bring_v forth_o by_o melchisedech_n be_v sacrifice_v by_o he_o and_o doctor_n whytaker_n in_o the_o 818._o and_o 819._o leaf_n of_o his_o book_n against_o duraeus_n and_o caluin_n upon_o the_o 7._o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrew_n confess_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o melchisedech_n sacrifice_v in_o bread_n and_o wine_n wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o to_o fulfil_v the_o type_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o melchisedech_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n no_o indifferent_a man_n cann_v doubt_v whether_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n or_o no_o to_o offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o sacrifice_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n see_v that_o he_o institute_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o command_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v use_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v use_v now_o among_o christian_n 1600._o year_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n athanasius_n in_o his_o oration_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la maiore_fw-la cite_v by_o theodoret_n in_o his_o second_o dialogue_n say_v it_o be_v a_o body_n whereunto_o he_o say_v sit_v at_o my_o right_a hand_n unto_o which_o body_n the_o devil_n the_o wicked_a power_n and_o the_o jew_n body_n christ_n a_o priest_n by_o offer_v his_o body_n be_v enemy_n by_o which_o body_n he_o be_v a_o high_a priest_n and_o a_o apostle_n so_o term_v for_o that_o mystery_n which_o he_o deliver_v unto_o we_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o old_a which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o thus_o s._n athanasius_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o chief_a priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o this_o prophecy_n which_o say_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisadec_n psal_n 109._o 4._o chap._n x._o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o upon_o altar_n among_o the_o convert_a gentiles_n 1._o the_o prophet_n malachi_n speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n say_v who_o be_v there_o among_o you_o jew_n that_o will_v kindle_v fire_n at_o my_o altar_n for_o naught_o i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o gift_n i_o will_v not_o receive_v of_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o to_o the_o go_v down_o great_a be_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v there_o be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n because_o my_o name_n be_v great_a among_o the_o gentile_n malach._n 1._o 10._o 2._o here_o first_o we_o have_v that_o after_o the_o come_n of_o messiah_n sacrifice_n be_v to_o cease_v among_o the_o jews_n at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o messiah_n the_o visible_a external_a sacrifice_n which_o the_o jew_n offer_v upon_o altar_n shall_v cease_v which_o we_o find_v true_a by_o experience_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o jew_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o any_o place_n but_o at_o jerusalem_n deut._n 12._o 11._o which_o be_v destroy_v by_o vespasianus_n and_o titus_n soon_o after_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o jew_n exile_v from_o thence_o they_o have_v be_v ever_o since_o without_o any_o visible_a external_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o verify_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n osee_n say_v many_o day_n shall_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n fit_a without_o king_n and_o without_o sacrifice_n and_o without_o altar_n etc._n etc._n even_o unto_o the_o last_o day_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v convert_v unto_o christianity_n osee_n 3._o second_o that_o among_o the_o gentile_n convert_v christian_n sacrifice_n in_o all_o nation_n among_o christian_n to_o christianity_n in_o every_o place_n shall_v be_v offer_v sacrifice_n upon_o altar_n which_o we_o see_v also_o fulfil_v by_o experience_n in_o europe_n asia_n africa_n and_o america_n 3._o three_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n in_o which_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n write_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v to_o cease_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v among_o the_o gentiles_n convert_v unto_o christianity_n be_v both_o express_v by_o one_o or_o the_o same_o hebrew_n word_n mincha_fw-mi which_o signify_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o fine_a flower_n for_o so_o it_o be_v express_v levit._n 2._o 1._o say_v when_o a_o soul_n shall_v offer_v a_o oblation_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o our_o lord_n fine_a flower_n shall_v be_v his_o oblation_n where_o for_o oblation_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o hebrew_n be_v put_v this_o word_n mincha_fw-mi so_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o prophecy_n be_v great_a be_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a unbloudy_a oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o see_v alsoe_o fulfil_v by_o experience_n in_o the_o offer_n up_o of_o the_o most_o immaculate_a body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n after_o a_o unbloudie_a manner_n all_o over_o the_o world_n among_o the_o gentiles_n convert_v unto_o christianity_n and_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o have_v be_v among_o christian_n any_o other_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v to_o god_n but_o it_o as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o liturgy_n or_o masse-booke_n of_o all_o age_n and_o country_n and_o the_o book_n of_o ancient_a father_n 4._o four_o the_o hebrew_a word_n mincha_fw-mi be_v by_o god_n the_o gentile_n be_v to_o offer_v a_o proper_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o judgement_n of_o both_o catholic_n or_o puritan_n take_v in_o the_o first_o place_n where_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o a_o proper_a external_a visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v to_o god_n and_o the_o text_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v therefore_o in_o the_o second_o place_n where_o it_o speak_v of_o christian_a sacrifice_n it_o intend_v a_o proper_a external_a visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v to_o god_n see_v that_o in_o both_o these_o place_n the_o sacrifice_n be_v express_v by_o one_o or_o the_o same_o word_n 5._o five_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o god_n altar_n the_o convert_v gentile_n be_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n upon_o altar_n reject_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n offer_v to_o he_o upon_o altar_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o this_o text_n of_o malachy_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o altar_n and_o by_o that_o of_o osee_n the_o 3._o chap._n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v without_o sacrifice_n and_o without_o altar_n wherefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n among_o the_o gentiles_n convert_v to_o christianity_n must_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n offer_v upon_o altar_n see_v they_o be_v both_o express_v by_o one_o or_o the_o same_o hebrew_n word_n and_o so_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n or_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n a_o sacrifice_n upon_o a_o altar_n 6._o six_o the_o prophet_n say_v there_o be_v offer_v oblation_n a_o clean_a oblation_n to_o my_o mane_n a_o pure_a or_o clean_a oblation_n not_o only_o clean_a and_o pure_a before_o man_n but_o before_o god_n to_o who_o it_o be_v offer_v and_o so_o be_v the_o oblation_n of_o the_o immaculate_a body_n or_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o among_o the_o gentile_n convert_v unto_o christianity_n and_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o have_v binn_n among_o christian_n any_o other_o pure_a or_o clean_a oblation_n which_o can_v minister_v occasion_n of_o doubt_v 7._o seventh_o though_o this_o pure_a and_o clean_a oblation_n shall_v be_v offer_v up_o in_o every_o place_n among_o where_o one_o host_n or_o oblation_n though_o offer_v everye_o where_o the_o convert_a gentile_n yet_o it_o shall_v be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o host_n or_o oblation_n offer_v in_o every_o place_n for_o the_o text_n say_v it_o
dry_v it_o at_o the_o fire_n and_o bruise_v it_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o meal_n and_o so_o shall_v thou_o offer_v thy_o first_o fruit_n levit._fw-la 2._o 14._o malachi_n the_o last_o of_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v how_o god_n will_v reject_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o have_v a_o clean_a oblation_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o every_o where_o among_o the_o convert_a gentiles_n say_v a_o gift_n i_o will_v not_o receive_v at_o your_o hand_n mal._n 1._o 10._o where_o the_o prophet_n account_v a_o clean_a oblation_n a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o a_o gift_n offer_v to_o god_n by_o priest_n upon_o a_o altar_n as_o all_o one_o 3._o s._n paul_n also_o make_v mention_n of_o these_o two_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o call_v th'vnbloudy_a sacrifice_n gift_n offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n by_o priest_n say_v every_o high_a priest_n take_v from_o among_o man_n be_v appoint_v for_o man_n in_o these_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n heb._n 5._o 1._o again_o every_o high_a priest_n be_v appoint_v to_o offer_v gift_n and_o host_n heb._n 8._o 3._o where_o distinguish_v the_o two_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o where_o offer_v by_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o call_v the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n gift_n and_o place_v they_o in_o the_o first_o rank_n as_o a_o more_o excellent_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n than_o host_n offer_v with_o carnal_a effusion_n of_o blood_n 4._o moreover_o that_o clean_o and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v call_v gift_n s._n hierom._n upon_o the_o 25._o chap._n of_o ezechiel_n and_o 15._o and_o 17._o verse_n do_v witness_n say_v that_o gift_n be_v thing_n of_o wheat_n flower_n or_o barley_n flower_n or_o oil_n offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n whereupon_o theophylact_v upon_o this_o 8._o chap._n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o 3._o verse_n say_v if_o we_o will_v diligent_o examine_v the_o difference_n between_o gift_n and_o host_n it_o be_v this_o that_o a_o host_n be_v offer_v with_o blood_n and_o flesh_n but_o gift_n consist_v of_o fruit_n and_o other_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v unbloudy_a with_o who_o agree_v our_o adversary_n samuel_n purchas_n a_o puritan_n in_o the_o 6._o chap._n of_o his_o 1._o book_n of_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o religion_n observe_v in_o all_o age_n say_v of_o sacrifice_n there_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n two_o kind_n the_o one_o call_a gift_n or_o oblation_n of_o thing_n without_o life_n the_o other_a victimes_a or_o slay_v sacrifice_n of_o bird_n and_o beast_n where_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o gift_n offer_v to_o god_n by_o priest_n appoint_v as_o saint_n paul_n say_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v all_o one_o 5._o these_o gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v also_o sacrifice_n what_o gift_n where_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n of_o two_o sort_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o thing_n solid_a as_o bread_n wheat_n new_a corn_n etc._n etc._n or_o of_o thing_n liquid_a as_o of_o wine_n oil_n etc._n etc._n if_o they_o be_v of_o solid_a thing_n than_o the_o manner_n be_v in_o sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o hart_n to_o break_v or_o bruise_v they_o if_o of_o liquid_a thing_n than_o the_o manner_n be_v also_o in_o sign_n of_o contrition_n and_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o h●●t_n to_o pour_v they_o four_o before_o god_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o solid_a and_o liquid_a unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n which_o where_o offer_v to_o god_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n so_o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o general_a offering_n gift_n oblation_n and_o ten_o of_o the_o peole_n first_o for_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v break_v or_o shed_v the_o other_a offer_a whole_a these_o be_v offer_v upon_o a_o altar_n by_o priest_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n heb._n 5._o 1._o the_o other_a offer_v at_o the_o altar_n by_o any_o one_o math._n 5._o 24._o these_o be_v public_a sacred_a visible_a sign_n of_o the_o inward_a contrition_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o they_o who_o offer_v as_o be_v prove_v heretofore_o the_o other_a private_a duty_n and_o donation_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o not_o all_o manner_n of_o gift_n or_o oblation_n be_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n but_o those_o which_o be_v break_v or_o shed_v to_o god_n upon_o a_o altar_n by_o a_o lawful_a priest_n to_o signify_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n 6._o this_o distinction_n put_v down_o of_o bloody_a and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o come_n be_v church_n our_o saviour_n establish_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o church_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n and_o to_o establish_v they_o in_o his_o church_n for_o after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n all_o the_o bloody_a sacrifice_n be_v to_o cease_v as_o witness_v the_o prophet_n david_n in_o the_o 39_o psalm_n prophet_n malachi_n in_o his_o first_o chapter_n s._n paul_n heb._n 10._o and_o the_o father_n cite_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n to_o this_o purpose_n but_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o to_o take_v away_o all_o kind_n of_o particular_a exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 8._o 9_o and_o 10._o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n therefore_o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n be_v to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o new_a law_n 7._o moreover_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o shall_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o new_a law_n say_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o gift_n and_o clean_a oblation_n malach_n 1._o whereupon_o lactantius_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 290._o in_o the_o 25._o chapter_n of_o his_o 6._o book_n of_o divine_a institution_n say_v there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n gift_n and_o sacrifice_n gift_n for_o ever_o sacrifice_n for_o a_o time_n with_o who_o agree_v the_o ancient_a father_n cite_v before_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n and_o many_o more_o who_o shall_v be_v cite_v here_o after_o in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n 8._o and_o as_o for_o the_o time_n when_o our_o saviour_n be_v god_n our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v gift_n to_o god_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o establish_v it_o in_o his_o church_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v then_o when_o he_o change_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o institute_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a which_o be_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n as_o appear_v by_o judas_n iscariot_n who_o be_v a_o priest_n and_o bishop_n as_o witness_v s._n peter_n act._n 1._o 20._o and_o yet_o can_v not_o be_v make_v before_o the_o last_o supper_n nor_o yet_o after_o see_v that_o present_o after_o the_o last_o supper_n he_o go_v forth_o and_o betray_v our_o lord_n luc._n 22._o and_o no_o man_n ever_o make_v a_o priest_n or_o bishop_n but_o he_o instruct_v he_o what_o he_o be_v to_o do_v second_o our_o adversaries_n in_o the_o book_n of_o their_o consecration_n of_o priest_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o consecration_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a la_o but_o at_o the_o last_o supper_n our_o saviour_n not_o only_o consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n himself_o as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v but_o also_o give_v unto_o the_o apostle_n authority_n to_o consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o and_o therefore_o he_o then_o make_v they_o priest_n and_o give_v they_o authority_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n and_o establish_v the_o say_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v use_v in_o his_o church_n this_o set_v down_o let_v we_o examine_v what_o our_o lord_n do_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n 9_o first_o he_o take_v bread_n which_o be_v a_o meat_n or_o thing_n use_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n gen._n 14._o 18._o second_o he_o bless_v the_o bread_n math._n 26._o 25._o and_o so_o make_v it_o holy_a and_o consecrate_a to_o god_n as_o all_o thing_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n be_v three_o he_o break_v it_o math._n 26._o 26._o with_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v donn_v in_o all_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 1._o paragraphe_n of_o this_o chapter_n
four_o he_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o substantial_a body_n say_v of_o that_o with_o be_v bread_n when_o he_o take_v it_o first_o into_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v more_o at_o large_a here_o after_o to_o show_v the_o power_n and_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n who_o can_v change_v and_o alter_v thing_n create_v at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n which_o ostension_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v use_v in_o all_o sacrifice_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n and_o last_o he_o give_v his_o body_n for_o a_o gift_n to_o god_n for_o we_o thereby_o to_o signify_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o his_o dominion_n over_o we_o as_o be_v use_v in_o particular_a external_a visible_a sacrifice_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a that_o the_o body_n which_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o particular_a gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o to_o signify_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n 10._o in_o like_a manner_n our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n take_v wine_n which_o also_o be_v use_v in_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n gen._n 13._o and_o after_o bless_v it_o as_o witness_v s._n paul_n 1._o cor._n 10._o so_o that_o it_o be_v holy_a and_o consecrate_a wine_n to_o god_n as_o be_v the_o wine_n of_o all_o sacrifice_n and_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o that_o which_o before_o be_v wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o blood_n say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n math._n 26._o 28._o to_o show_v the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o alter_v and_o change_v all_o thing_n create_v at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n which_o alteration_n by_o some_o change_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v be_v use_v in_o all_o sacrifice_n and_o last_o to_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o thereby_o to_o signify_v the_o invisible_a contrition_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o his_o dominion_n over_o we_o and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o not_o after_o a_o carnal_a or_o cruel_a manner_n but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o gift_n clean_a oblation_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n as_o witness_v the_o practice_n and_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n no_o christian_a catholic_n man_n ever_o affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n shed_v his_o blood_n after_o a_o carnal_a cruel_a manner_n but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o gift_n and_o clean_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o prophecy_n cite_v before_o in_o the_o 8._o and_o 10._o chapter_n 11._o our_o adversary_n confess_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n administer_v the_o communion_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v never_o read_v of_o any_o sect_n or_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o former_a age_n that_o they_o communicate_v together_o and_o not_o of_o meat_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n except_o the_o epicure_n and_o atheist_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n administer_v the_o holy_a communion_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o offer_v first_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o meat_n which_o he_o deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n before_o he_o deliver_v it_o and_o bloody_a sacrifice_n be_v to_o cease_v in_o the_o new_a law_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n of_o gift_n and_o administer_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o these_o gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n see_v he_o in_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n say_v of_o they_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o luk_n 22._o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o 1._o cor._n 11._o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o 12._o and_o after_o that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n have_v offer_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n or_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o have_v communicate_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o same_o he_o present_o by_o a_o express_a command_n establish_v the_o say_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o church_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk_n 22_o and_o this_o do_v you_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 24._o whereupon_o the_o catholic_a anciens_fw-fr father_n believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o sometime_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n gift_n sometime_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n as_o all_o one_o thing_n as_o i_o will_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n xii_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o his_o church_n 1._o first_o all_o the_o catholic_n ancient_a father_n be_v priest_n the_o father_n bishop_n or_o priest_n either_o bishop_n or_o priest_n or_o both_o and_o either_o daily_a or_o often_o use_v and_o practise_v liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n which_o teach_v the_o offering_n of_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o their_o church_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o protestant_n bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o england_n use_v the_o book_n of_o the_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o their_o church_n so_o they_o can_v not_o but_o believe_v and_o teach_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o sacrifice_n no_o ancient_a book_n of_o the_o administation_n of_o the_o communion_n but_o teach_v unbloodie_a sacrifice_n blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o his_o church_n unless_o our_o adversary_n will_v make_v they_o atheist_n and_o hypocrite_n to_o say_v and_o do_v one_o thing_n and_o believe_v another_o for_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o be_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n among_o any_o sect_n or_o sort_n of_o christian_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v any_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n but_o those_o which_o teach_v how_o to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o how_o to_o administer_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o same_o 2._o this_o be_v first_o manifest_v by_o the_o practice_n and_o proceed_v of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o invention_n protestant_n bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v new_a invention_n who_o when_o they_o do_v resolve_v in_o the_o 2._o year_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o sixth_o a_o child_n to_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n and_o to_o have_v a_o religion_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o offering_n of_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o altar_n can_v not_o find_v before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n any_o one_o bishop_n or_o priest_n who_o have_v take_v such_o order_n or_o be_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n of_o such_o a_o religion_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v by_o who_o they_o can_v or_o may_v have_v such_o bishop_n and_o priest_n make_v nor_o yet_o any_o book_n in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n where_o in_o they_o may_v or_o can_v find_v the_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v such_o kind_n of_o bishop_n or_o priest_n but_o see_v they_o will_v needs_o have_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o religion_n they_o be_v force_v to_o invent_v a_o new_a form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v bishop_n and_o priest_n conformable_a unto_o their_o desire_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o book_n entitle_v the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n 3._o and_o this_o
every_o place_n there_o be_v altar_n as_o god_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n for_o express_v the_o ecclesiastical_a sincerity_n of_o the_o new_a law_n and_o lay_v open_a the_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o old_a law_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n omnipotent_a and_o host_n i_o will_v not_o receive_v at_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_v down_o my_o name_n be_v glorify_v among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n sacrifice_n be_v offer_v unto_o my_o name_n and_o a_o pure_a sacifice_n see_v how_o plain_o how_o manifest_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o that_o mystical_a table_n which_o be_v the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n the_o pure_a sacrifice_n be_v certain_o the_o chief_a mystical_a table_n the_o heavenly_a and_o most_o venerable_a host_n so_o s_n chrysostome_n 7._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n liturgy_n the_o ancient_a father_n agree_v able_a to_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n do_v also_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n somctimes_o gift_n and_o sometime_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o s._n dionysius_n areopagita_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n say_v the_o bishop_n after_o that_o he_o have_v show_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o divine_a work_n come_v to_o communicate_v they_o himself_o and_o also_o invit_v other_o again_o the_o bishop_n do_v show_v the_o cover_a gift_n and_o that_o which_o in_o they_o be_v one_o he_o divide_v gift_n vnbloudie_a sacrifice_n call_v gift_n into_o many_o s._n clement_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o constitution_n speak_v of_o the_o sacred_a host_n after_o consecration_n say_v we_o beseech_v thou_o o_o lord_n favorablie_o to_o look_v upon_o these_o gift_n set_v before_o thou_o and_o in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n he_o earnest_o beseech_v god_n to_o receive_v the_o say_v gift_n offer_v for_o all_o bishop_n priest_n king_n and_o the_o people_n there_o present_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n theodoret_n in_o his_o 2._o dialogue_n say_v what_o do_v you_o call_v the_o gift_n which_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o priest_n answer_v it_o be_v make_v of_o such_o like_a seed_n and_o after_o the_o sanctification_n how_o do_v you_o call_v those_o thing_n answer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 8._o s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n say_v christ_n teach_v the_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v testament_n gift_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n from_o the_o apostle_n offer_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o god_n who_o give_v we_o for_o nourishment_n the_o first_o fruit_n of_o his_o gift_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o likewise_o the_o 318._o father_n in_o the_o first_o general_n great_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o 5._o cannon_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a copy_n call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n a_o most_o pure_a gift_n offer_v to_o god_n where_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o those_o ancient_a father_n do_v call_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n gift_n of_o the_o divine_a work_n and_o a_o most_o pure_a gift_n before_o they_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o communion_n as_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n independent_a of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n 9_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o ancient_a father_n do_v call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n a_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o evangelicall_a demonstration_n say_v we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o most_o high_a priest_n of_o all_o to_o offer_v unto_o the_o supreme_a god_n throughout_o our_o whole_a life_n unbloudie_a and_o reasonable_a victim_n sweet_a unto_o he_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o his_o first_o oration_n sacrifice_n julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la hate_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n against_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la show_v the_o aversion_n which_o this_o apostata_fw-la have_v from_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n say_v he_o profane_v his_o hand_n that_o he_o may_v wash_v they_o from_o the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n by_o which_o we_o communicate_v christ_n and_o his_o suffering_n and_o divinity_n 10._o s._n cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n in_o declaratione_fw-la anathematismi_fw-la 11._o say_v we_o offer_v the_o holy_a quicken_n and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n believe_v the_o body_n and_o precious_a blood_n which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o to_o be_v not_o of_o a_o common_a man_n and_o like_v unto_o we_o but_o of_o the_o word_n again_o in_o his_o book_n the_o adoratione_n in_o spirituli_fw-la 13._o the_o table_n true_o of_o proposition_n have_v bread_n upon_o it_o do_v signify_v our_o unbloudie_a host_n wherewith_o we_o all_o be_v bless_v whilst_o we_o eat_v that_o bread_n which_o be_v from_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ._n 11._o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o so_o universal_o believe_v of_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n clean_a oblation_n or_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v offer_v by_o bishop_n and_o priest_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o that_o three_o of_o the_o 4._o first_o general_n counsel_n which_o ever_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n call_v the_o eucharist_n or_o thing_n deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o great_a general_a council_n of_o nice_a which_o be_v the_o first_o general_a council_n which_o ever_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n say_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a they_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o three_o book_n and_o title_n of_o the_o divine_a table_n let_v we_o understand_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v place_v upon_o the_o table_n sacrifice_v after_o a_o unbloudie_a manner_n by_o priest_n 12._o in_o like_a manner_n s._n cirill_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n chief_a of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o 26._o epistle_n set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o same_o council_n write_v after_o this_o manner_n unto_o nestorius_n the_o heretic_n for_o who_o condemnation_n sacrifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n they_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n that_o council_n be_v call_v say_v i_o can_v omit_v this_o that_o whilst_o we_o declare_v the_o death_n of_o the_o only_o son_n of_o god_n and_o his_o resurrection_n from_o death_n we_o also_o confess_v his_o assumption_n into_o heaven_n and_o celebrate_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n and_o approach_v unto_o the_o mystical_a blessing_n by_o which_o mean_n we_o be_v sanctify_v as_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a flesh_n and_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o we_o all_o neither_o do_v we_o receive_v it_o as_o common_a flesh_n god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v do_v so_o nor_o yet_o as_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o holy_a man_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o receive_v it_o as_o true_o quicken_a flesh_n and_o as_o proper_a flesh_n of_o the_o word_n it_o self_n which_o be_v incarnate_a thus_o s_n cyrill_n chief_a in_o the_o general_a council_n to_o the_o heretic_n nestorius_n 13._o and_o in_o the_o 4._o general_a council_n which_o crifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o counce_v of_o chalcedon_n they_o offer_v unbloudy_a sa_o crifice_n be_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n ischyrion_n deacon_n of_o alexandria_n prefer_v in_o the_o three_o act_n of_o the_o council_n a_o bill_n of_o complaint_n unto_o the_o council_n against_o dioscorus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n a_o wicked_a man_n among_o other_o thing_n accuse_v he_o of_o this_o as_o of_o agreat_a crime_n that_o whereas_o in_o lybia_n for_o the_o sterility_n of_o the_o country_n wheat_n will_v not_o grow_v the_o most_o pious_a emperor_n allow_v wheat_n first_o that_o as_o he_o say_v the_o unbloudie_a host_n may_v be_v offer_v of_o it_o and_o secondlie_o for_o the_o relief_n of_o pilgrim_n and_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o province_n dioscorus_n will_v not_o permit_v the_o holy_a bishop_n of_o the_o country_n to_o receive_v the_o say_a wheat_n but_o will_v forestall_v it_o and_o buy_v it_o up_o with_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n and_o in_o time_n of_o famine_n shall_v it_o again_o at_o most_o dear_a rate_n and_o by_o these_o mean_n neither_o the_o terrible_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o there_o it_o be_v term_v be_v celebrate_v nor_o the_o pelgrim_n or_o poor_a relieve_v thus_o ischyrion_n in_o his_o complaint_n against_o dioscorus_n the_o heretic_n unto_o the_o general_a council_n of_o
chalcedon_n whereby_o it_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_a that_o three_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n and_o esteem_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n unto_o god_n 14._o to_o this_o we_o may_v add_v the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o three_o tcme_n of_o the_o sixth_o section_n say_v nice_a the_o 2._o council_n of_o nice_a none_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o our_o famous_a father_n call_v our_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v donn_v in_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o all_o his_o dispensation_n the_o image_n of_o his_o body_n again_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o say_a council_n say_v neither_o our_o lord_n or_o the_o apostle_n or_o father_n ever_o call_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v by_o the_o priest_n a_o image_n or_o sign_n so_o these_o four_o general_a counsel_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a unto_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n a_o proper_a and_o special_a visible_a external_a unbloudie_a sacrifice_n and_o ordain_v that_o a_o proper_a and_o special_a visible_a external_a unbloudie_a sacrifice_n represent_v the_o inward_a and_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o his_o church_n by_o bishop_n and_o priste_n thereby_o to_o honour_n god_n with_o divine_a worship_n or_o latria_n only_o due_a to_o he_o make_v commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o we_o and_o preserve_v peace_n unity_n and_o societiewith_o god_n and_o among_o ourselves_o all_o after_o what_o manner_n our_o saviour_n die_v for_o all_o 15._o for_o though_o our_o saviour_n die_v for_o all_o and_o his_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v of_o such_o a_o value_n and_o virtue_n that_o it_o alone_o for_o as_o much_o as_o be_v require_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n be_v sufficient_a to_o redeem_v a_o thousand_o world_n if_o there_o be_v so_o many_o yet_o because_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o redemption_n be_v donn_v but_o once_o and_o neither_o can_v nor_o need_v to_o be_v donn_v any_o more_o and_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o neither_o be_v it_o convenient_a that_o he_o shall_v so_o redeem_v mankind_n by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n as_o that_o man_n on_o his_o part_n shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v for_o his_o salvation_n but_o only_o idle_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o and_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o he_o ordain_v that_o all_o those_o who_o will_v be_v save_v shall_v not_o only_o believe_v the_o whole_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o plant_v upon_o earth_n s._n john_n say_v in_o his_o second_o epistle_n every_o one_o that_o revolt_v and_o persi_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n but_o also_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v command_v compare_v the_o rest_n unto_o fool_n say_v every_o one_o that_o hear_v these_o my_o word_n and_o do_v they_o not_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o foolish_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o the_o sand_n matth._n 7._o wherefore_o all_o those_o who_o be_v of_o year_n of_o discretion_n and_o will_v not_o be_v number_v among_o these_o fool_n and_o perish_v eternal_o be_v to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n thereby_o to_o honour_n god_n with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n due_a only_o unto_o he_o apply_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n unto_o they_o make_v commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o fulfil_v his_o command_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v say_v teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n matth._n 28._o 19_o so_o also_o he_o command_v they_o to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n say_v after_o he_o have_v give_v his_o body_n for_o we_o do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk._n 22._o 16._o if_o our_o saviour_n by_o his_o sacrifice_n of_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n shall_v have_v redeem_v all_o virtue_n if_o our_o saviour_n have_v redeem_v all_o man_n with_o out_o do_v any_o thing_n on_o their_o part_n he_o have_v destroy_v all_o moral_a virtue_n man_n absolute_o without_o require_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v donn_v on_o their_o part_n but_o only_o to_o believe_v he_o have_v destroy_v all_o moral_a virtue_n as_o patience_n obedience_n humility_n justice_n fortitude_n temperance_n etc._n etc._n and_o also_o those_o theological_a virtue_n of_o charity_n and_o hope_v and_o have_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o plant_v idleness_n sloth_n sin_n and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n among_o man_n which_o be_v absurd_a see_v that_o as_o s._n john_n say_v for_o this_o appear_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v dissolve_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n 1._o joh._n 3._o 8._o and_o the_o sin_n of_o sloth_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a torment_n matth._n 25._o 26._o and_o this_o be_v sufficieot_n to_o show_v how_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o his_o church_n chap._n xiii_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n before_o luther_n believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v they_o in_o his_o church_n 1._o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o be_v world_n unbloody_a sacrifice_n dilate_v over_o the_o world_n before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o martin_n luther_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v they_o to_o be_v use_v in_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o witness_v all_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a which_o have_v be_v use_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n in_o any_o country_n province_n city_n or_o parish_n in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o by_o any_o know_a sect_n or_o sort_n of_o man_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v all_o which_o book_n be_v make_v chief_o to_o express_v what_o pass_v at_o the_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o retain_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n a_o pious_a memory_n and_o commemoration_n of_o he_o according_a to_o his_o command_n say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o do_v in_o commemoration_n of_o i_o in_o execution_n whereof_o all_o those_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice-booke_n be_v put_v forth_o either_o by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolical_a man_n as_o witness_v the_o book_n themselves_o unto_o which_o book_n howsoever_o some_o prayer_n name_n of_o saint_n or_o the_o like_a may_v be_v add_v which_o be_v common_o donn_v according_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o worthiness_n of_o saintes_n arise_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o all_o christian_n catholic_n man_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o expression_n of_o what_o pass_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o b._n sacrtment_n there_o be_v nothing_o add_v of_o moment_n or_o substance_n 2._o and_o this_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o book_n themselves_o sacrifice_n all_o catholic_a public_a church-seruice_n book_n agree_v in_o sacrifice_n which_o though_o they_o have_v be_v disperse_v in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n since_o they_o be_v make_v through_o christendom_n and_o be_v pen_v by_o diverse_a of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n yet_o in_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o so_o uniform_o express_v the_o commemoration_n command_v to_o to_o be_v observe_v by_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n by_o divine_a gift_n or_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o though_o they_o have_v all_o in_o this_o point_n be_v pen_v at_o diverse_a time_n by_o one_o man_n and_o use_v in_o one_o city_n or_o church_n which_o can_v never_o have_v be_v if_o any_o of_o the_o say_a book_n have_v in_o this_o point_n be_v corrupt_v for_o to_o corrupt_v they_o all_o in_o those_o mystery_n which_o the_o christian_a catholic_n have_v ever_o esteem_v to_o be_v sacred_a and_o all_o their_o corruption_n to_o agree_v in_o this_o point_n
live_v above_o 1200._o year_n past_a and_o thus_o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o lord_n after_o a_o unbloudie_a manner_n which_o be_v begin_v at_o jerusalem_n by_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v after_o disperse_v and_o plant_v all_o over_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n their_o successor_n and_o have_v continue_v until_o this_o day_n as_o we_o may_v find_v by_o experience_n 9_o for_o our_o adversary_n to_o say_v that_o all_o these_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n which_o corrupt_v all_o the_o liturgy_n can_v not_o be_v corrupt_v have_v be_v use_v by_o all_o nation_n country_n and_o people_n who_o have_v be_v convert_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolical_a man_n who_o name_n will_v be_v to_o tedious_a to_o rehearse_v have_v in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n be_v corrupt_v without_o assign_v when_o or_o where_o or_o by_o what_o man_n or_o mean_n so_o main_a sundry_a and_o diverse_a nation_n separate_v by_o place_n government_n tongue_n in_o war_n one_o with_o another_o divide_v many_o time_n in_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n can_v become_v so_o general_o corrupt_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o point_n and_o that_o a_o thing_n which_o they_o for_o the_o most_o part_n all_o practise_v daily_o be_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v but_o to_o excuse_v excuse_n in_o sin_n psal_n 140._o 4._o 10._o neither_o may_v our_o adversary_n say_v as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v in_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v bring_v up_o this_o as_o new_a doctrine_n for_o first_o it_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o old_a law_n before_o there_o be_v any_o christian_a pope_n second_o many_o of_o these_o nation_n who_o use_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v so_o far_o distant_a from_o he_o as_o that_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o these_o late-yeare_n that_o navigation_n and_o travel_v into_o strange_a country_n have_v be_v more_o in_o use_n they_o do_v scarce_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n or_o no_o and_o many_o of_o they_o remain_v yet_o in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n divide_v from_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o grecian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o and_o other_o heretic_n in_o egypt_n the_o muscovite_n and_o russian_n 11._o moreover_o the_o afore_o say_v proclus_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v affirm_v that_o by_o these_o prayer_n of_o the_o liturgy_n they_o expect_v the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o by_o his_o divine_a presence_n he_o may_v make_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n mix_v with_o water_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o self_n same_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n which_o religious_a rite_n be_v true_o observe_v until_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v be_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n about_o 1200._o year_n ago_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o be_v no_o new_a doctrine_n nor_o invent_v by_o any_o man_n but_o institute_v by_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o publish_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n at_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n as_o be_v foretell_v by_o our_o saviour_n act._n 1._o as_o far_o witness_v s._n hierom._n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o prophet_n malachi_n say_v in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v offer_v a_o oblation_n not_o a_o unclean_a one_o as_o be_v offer_v by_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n but_o a_o clean_a one_o as_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o christian_n the_o conclusion_n though_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n be_v delight_v with_o that_o worship_n which_o procee_v from_o our_o spirit_n yet_o because_o the_o foul_a as_o long_o as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o mortal_a body_n can_v make_v her_o inward_a act_n oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o herself_o convenient_o and_o perfect_o except_o she_o behold_v the_o same_o in_o some_o sensible_a oblation_n of_o a_o gift_n or_o present_v offer_v visible_o to_o god_n before_o she_o as_o a_o mean_n sign_n or_o motive_n to_o move_v and_o stir_v she_o up_o unto_o that_o interior_a and_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o herself_o the_o understanding_n of_o mortal_a man_n depend_v upon_o the_o sense_n according_a to_o that_o axiom_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o understanding_n which_o be_v not_o first_o either_o by_o itself_o or_o by_o some_o resemblance_n in_o some_o one_o of_o the_o sense_n therefore_o god_n of_o be_v infinite_a goodness_n condiscend_v unto_o our_o capacity_n have_v institute_v a_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o church_n to_o move_v and_o stir_v we_o up_o unto_o this_o interior_a and_o invisible_a wherein_o he_o so_o much_o delight_v the_o example_n whereof_o we_o may_v find_v in_o prayer_n god_n understand_v that_o prayer_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o which_o delight_v he_o most_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o mind_n yet_o because_o the_o operation_n and_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o this_o life_n depend_v upon_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n ●nd_v sense_n therefore_o god_n have_v institute_v vocal_a prayer_n or_o prayer_n with_o the_o mouth_n in_o his_o church_n ●s_v a_o sensible_a sign_n to_o provoke_v the_o heart_n fervent_o ●o_o pray_v and_o praise_v he_o so_o that_o those_o who_o will_v have_v man_n to_o practice_v and_o use_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o yet_o deny_v they_o the_o exercise_n of_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v like_a unto_o those_o who_o will_v have_v man_n pray_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o study_v to_o become_v learn_v and_o yet_o permit_v they_o no_o book_n nor_o exterior_a mean_n to_o learn_v which_o our_o most_o bless_a lord_n consider_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o new_a law_n leave_v we_o not_o without_o a_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n but_o institute_v it_o in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o curtain_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o more_o powerful_o to_o move_v and_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n by_o the_o excellency_n and_o eminency_n of_o the_o outward_a object_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o ensue_a book_n finis_fw-la censura_fw-la trractatus_fw-la hic_fw-la de_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la nihil_fw-la continet_fw-la quod_fw-la aut_fw-la rectae_fw-la fidei_fw-la aut_fw-la bonis_fw-la moribus_fw-la repugnet_fw-la imprimi_fw-la itaque_fw-la poterit_fw-la &_o divulgari_fw-la lovanij_fw-la 12_o febr._n 1637._o antonius_n loverius_n s._n t._n l_o apost_n &_o regius_n lib._n censor_n of_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god._n the_o second_o part_n write_v by_o anonymus_n eremita_n sacrifice_n you_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o justice_n and_o hope_v in_o our_o lord_n psal_n 4._o 6._o at_o bruxelles_n by_o hubert_n antony_z velpius_n printer_n to_o his_o majesty_n 1638._o the_o preface_n religion_n say_v s._n thomas_n in_o 22._o quest_n 81._o art_n 1._o be_v a_o virtue_n by_o which_o man_n give_v to_o god_n due_a worship_n and_o reverence_n wherein_o he_o agree_v with_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n saying_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o religion_n to_o give_v due_a honour_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o honour_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v chief_o and_o most_o proper_o due_a unto_o god_n be_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o outward_a visible_a sacrifice_n of_o some_o creature_n to_o express_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o word_n do_v thing_n which_o be_v proper_o latria_n or_o service_n due_a unto_o god_n as_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 5._o and_o 6._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o without_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n there_o can_v be_v any_o perfect_a religion_n for_o though_o some_o of_o the_o more_o pious_a sort_n of_o man_n by_o a_o long_a custom_n and_o much_o practice_n may_v attain_v unto_o a_o continual_a or_o often_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n by_o inward_a anagogical_a act_n without_o the_o help_n of_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n yet_o because_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n in_o this_o life_n depend_v upon_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n for_o their_o knowledge_n and_o operation_n therefore_o they_o have_v need_n to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o sensible_a and_o visible_a thing_n unto_o god_n and_o invisible_a because_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o roman_n the_o
invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n be_v know_v by_o the_o visible_a and_o the_o increated_a by_o the_o creature_n and_o can_v in_o this_o life_n be_v well_o know_v or_o learn_v of_o man_n by_o other_o mean_n therefore_o religion_n can_v stand_v without_o visible_a sacrifice_n which_o may_v as_o by_o a_o sign_n or_o motive_n conduct_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n unto_o the_o invisible_a of_o the_o heart_n so_o to_o be_v unyte_v unto_o god_n again_o the_o strength_n of_o a_o kingdom_n be_v the_o unity_n or_o concord_n of_o the_o subject_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o sovereign_n under_o god_n and_o by_o visible_a sacrifice_n not_o only_o a_o league_n of_o freindshippe_n and_o civil_a unity_n be_v make_v among_o man_n by_o the_o participation_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v sacrifice_v as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n but_o also_o there_o pass_v as_o it_o be_v a_o covenant_n betwixt_o god_n and_o they_o whereby_o they_o become_v his_o particular_a people_n and_o he_o their_o god_n and_o protector_n without_o who_o particular_a providence_n and_o protection_n no_o common_a wealth_n can_v either_o prosper_v or_o stand_v whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o perfect_a common_a wealth_n or_o well_o frame_v monarchy_n without_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o which_o cause_n aristotle_n in_o the_o 7._o of_o his_o politics_n speak_v of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v precise_o necessary_a to_o the_o preservation_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n guide_v by_o the_o light_n of_o abondant_a reason_n give_v order_v that_o special_a care_n be_v have_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o god_n because_o this_o be_v the_o end_n and_o office_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n to_o unite_v man_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o as_o further_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v whatsoever_o thing_n we_o read_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o god_n diverse_a way_n concern_v sacrifice_n in_o mystery_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n or_o of_o the_o temple_n they_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o our_o neighbour_n by_o which_o love_n peace_n unity_n and_o concord_n the_o commonwealth_n be_v establish_v wherefore_o see_v that_o some_o kind_n of_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v so_o absolute_o necessary_a both_o to_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o a_o common_a wealth_n as_o that_o they_o can_v well_o stand_v or_o be_v without_o they_o it_o can_v be_v that_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n the_o wisdom_n of_o his_o eternal_a father_n shall_v either_o establish_v a_o religion_n or_o plant_v a_o common_a wealth_n among_o man_n without_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o daily_a sacrifice_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n chap._n i._o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o our_o saviour_n come_v into_o this_o world_n not_o to_o destroy_v religion_n or_o take_v away_o the_o honour_n or_o worship_n due_a unto_o god_n and_o the_o peace_n unity_n and_o society_n of_o man_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o but_o to_o plant_v a_o more_o eminent_a religion_n increase_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o eternal_a father_n and_o establish_v a_o more_o perfect_a peace_n union_n and_o society_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o of_o man_n among_o themselves_o that_o they_o may_v be_v themselves_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n come_n be_v peace_n and_o unity_n of_o man_n with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o one_o as_o he_o and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o according_a to_o his_o word_n say_v that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o and_o they_o also_o in_o we_o may_v be_v one_o joh._n 18._o 21._o to_o effect_v this_o his_o union_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v end_v the_o external_a visible_a bloody_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o pascall_n lamb_n wherewith_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unyte_v and_o communicate_v in_o the_o old_a law_n he_o present_o institute_v the_o exterior_a visible_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n of_o the_o new_a law_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o his_o church_n shall_v not_o no_o for_o a_o little_a time_n be_v without_o a_o law_n religion_n and_o particular_a exterior_a sacrifice_n or_o god_n without_o unity_n sacrifice_n the_o mean_n of_o unity_n his_o visible_a honour_n of_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n due_a only_o unto_o he_o or_o the_o child_n of_o his_o church_n without_o that_o mean_n of_o unity_n with_o he_o and_o among_o themselves_o which_o he_o desire_v for_o after_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o pascall_n lamb_n be_v end_v before_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o table_n take_v bread_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n supper_n our_o saviour_n institute_v sacrifice_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o luc._n 22._o 20._o where_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v to_o you_o as_o a_o sacrament_n only_o to_o eat_v but_o which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n as_o a_o gift_n or_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n offer_v or_o give_v to_o god_n 2._o second_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v that_o of_o the_o two_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n the_o one_o be_v call_v gift_n or_o unbloudie_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n and_o the_o other_o bloody_a both_o which_o be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o come_n who_o come_v not_o to_o break_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v mat._n 5._o and_o to_o perfect_v those_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n be_v do_v in_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o we_o as_o witness_v s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 10._o and_o heb._n 7._o therefore_o our_o saviour_n here_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n to_o show_v that_o he_o institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n you_o why_o our_o saviour_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o of_o gift_n to_o be_v use_v in_o his_o church_n in_o the_o new_a law_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o type_n and_o prophecy_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o old_a law_n concern_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v sacrifice_v for_o you_o the_o better_a to_o express_v himself_o that_o here_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o institute_v gift_n or_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n to_o be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o type_n and_o figure_n and_o prophecy_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o old_a law_n concern_v gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n whereupon_o the_o scripture_n indifferent_o do_v use_v the_o word_n christ_n give_v himself_o one_o christ_n to_o give_v his_o body_n for_o we_o and_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n be_v all_o one_o for_o we_o and_o christ_n offer_v himself_o for_o we_o be_v all_o one_o say_v jesus-christ_n give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n gal._n 1._o again_o jesus-christ_n give_v himself_o a_o redemption_n for_o all_o 1._o tim._n 2._o 6._o again_o jesus-christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n tit._n 2._o 14._o whereby_o we_o see_v that_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n only_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o do_v more_o fit_o and_o proper_o explicate_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n or_o clean_a oblation_n and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o our_o saviour_n as_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v to_o establish_v in_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n psal_n 109._o 4._o heb._n 7._o 11._o and_o 12._o mal●_n 1._o 10._o 3._o three_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o say_v here_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o you_o as_o to_o be_v give_v afterward_o upon_o the_o cross_n but_o which_o be_v
cross_n he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n who_o be_v of_o his_o church_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n joh._n 2._o 2._o reconcile_a the_o world_n unto_o himself_o 2._o cor._n 5._o 19_o as_o he_o deliver_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v saviour_n of_o the_o world_n joh._n 4._o 14._o whereupon_o the_o believe_a samaritan_n say_v we_o believe_v and_o do_v know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n indeed_o joh._n 4._o 41._o but_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n to_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o give_v or_o deliver_v of_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o cross_n or_o the_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o all_o but_o this_o be_v my_o hody_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o who_o be_v of_o my_o church_n for_o to_o the_o apostle_n he_o speak_v it_o and_o likewise_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n matth._n 26._o 28._o and_o again_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o mark_v 14._o 14._o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a unto_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o here_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o deliver_v of_o his_o body_n or_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n at_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o at_o it_o be_v in_o the_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n see_v he_o limit_v this_o deliver_v of_o his_o body_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n unto_o many_o and_o not_o unto_o all_o 7._o our_o saviour_n here_o make_v and_o establish_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n say_v of_o his_o blood_n testament_n our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n make_v his_o testament_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n mar._n 14._o whereupon_o tertullian_n in_o the_o 40._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o martion_n say_v christ_n establish_v his_o testament_n seal_v with_o his_o blood_n in_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o chalice_n and_o doctor_n feat_o a_o puritan_n in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o his_o grand_a sacrilege_n avouch_v that_o christ_n call_v the_o cup_n his_o testament_n or_o last_o legacy_n but_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o make_v or_o confirm_v without_o a_o sacrifice_n new_a the_o old_a testament_n be_v dedicate_v with_o sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o the_o new_a as_o witness_v moses_n exodus_fw-la 24._o and_o s._n paul_n hebr._n the_o 9_o therefore_o neither_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n make_v or_o establish_v without_o a_o sacrifice_n see_v that_o the_o old_a be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o new_a and_o to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o it_o 8._o the_o dedication_n or_o make_v of_o a_o testament_n aught_o to_o be_v a_o man_n own_o free_a act_n and_o will_v and_o will_n a_o testament_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o man_n own_o free_a will_n not_o the_o act_n of_o a_o other_o man_n or_o man_n and_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n you_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o wicked_a man_n have_v crucify_v and_o slay_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n act._n 2._o 23._o again_o you_o do_v kill_v jesus_n hang_v he_o upon_o a_o tree_n act._n 5._o 30._o wherefore_o the_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n at_o his_o passion_n can_v not_o be_v the_o dedication_n of_o his_o testament_n see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o own_o act_n but_o the_o act_n of_o the_o jew_n not_o can_v be_v his_o own_o act_n see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v himself_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o here_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n our_o lord_n make_v his_o testament_n and_o bequeath_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n unto_o his_o church_n to_o be_v offer_v in_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n until_o he_o come_v again_o 9_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o experience_n that_o s._n paul_n experience_n manifest_a by_o experience_n teach_v the_o corinthian_n and_o grecian_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o for_o that_o the_o corinthian_n and_o grecian_n even_o from_o their_o first_o conversion_n unto_o the_o faith_n by_o s._n paul_n which_o be_v many_o year_n before_o he_o writhe_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o they_o act._n 18._o 21._o and_o 1._o cor._n 16._o use_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n by_o three_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v of_o grecian_a bishopp_n and_o before_o any_o of_o these_o general_a counsel_n be_v the_o provincial_a council_n of_o ancyra_n in_o the_o lesser_a asia_n not_o far_o from_o corinth_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v of_o grecian_a bishopp_n of_o those_o province_n unto_o which_o s._n paul_n have_v preach_v before_o he_o writhe_v this_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n as_o of_o the_o bishopp_n of_o antioch_n caesarea_n galatia_n and_o phrigia_n act._n 18._o 22._o and_o 23._o yet_o these_o bishopp_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o 2._o canon_n of_o the_o say_a council_n which_o decree_v that_o if_o a_o priest_n or_o deacon_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n shall_v offer_v incense_n unto_o a_o idol_n and_o after_o recover_v himself_o and_o fuffer_v constant_o for_o the_o faith_n then_o he_o shall_v retain_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o sea_n and_o place_n but_o not_o be_v admit_v aine_z more_o either_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n or_o assist_v at_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n or_o holy_a liturgy_n 10._o who_o can_v better_a tell_v we_o what_o manner_n of_o communion_n s._n paul_n teach_v the_o corinthian_n and_o grecian_n &_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n which_o concern_v the_o holy_a communion_n than_o the_o corinthian_o and_o grecian_n themselves_o who_o not_o only_o receive_v this_o epistle_n from_o s._n paul_n but_o also_o see_v his_o practice_n and_o example_n a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a together_o act._n 18._o 11._o when_o the_o custom_n of_o priest_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o administer_v the_o communion_n every_o day_n act._n 2._o 42._o and_o among_o the_o corinthian_n who_o can_v better_a tell_v we_o what_o s._n paul_n do_v and_o teach_v in_o this_o point_n than_o s._n dionysius_n areopagita_n who_o be_v convert_v by_o s._n paul_n not_o only_o corinth_n s._n dionysius_n bishop_n of_o corinth_n many_o year_n before_o he_o writhe_v this_o epistle_n act._n 17._o but_o also_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o corinth_n unto_o who_o s._n paul_n write_v this_o epistle_n as_o withness_v eusebius_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o history_n yet_o he_o in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n set_v down_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n which_o be_v use_v in_o his_o time_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o communion_n show_v that_o they_o use_v to_o communicate_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o this_o day_n say_v the_o bishop_n assoon_o as_o he_o have_v say_v holy_a prayer_n upon_o the_o divine_a altar_n begin_v to_o incense_v it_o and_o proceed_v to_o set_v down_o a_o short_a ritual_a or_o form_n of_o a_o solemn_a manner_n of_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o a_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o perform_v by_o a_o bishop_n and_o diverse_a priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o officer_n to_o assist_v he_o as_o be_v use_v in_o great_a solemnity_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n in_o all_o our_o cathedral_n and_o principal_a church_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o say_v 3._o chapter_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o solemn_a sacrifice_n in_o every_o cathedral_n church_n 11._o now_o see_v that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n i_o receive_v of_o our_o lord_n that_o which_o also_o i_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o many_o year_n ago_o when_o i_o be_v with_o you_o act._n 18._o 11._o and_o the_o corinthian_n and_o grecian_n administrate_v
the_o communion_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n offer_v in_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o both_o s._n paul_n teach_v the_o corinthian_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o communion_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n 12._o moreover_o not_o only_a s._n paul_n have_v be_v at_o epistle_n the_o faith_n at_o corinth_n before_o the_o write_v word_n of_o this_o epistle_n corinth_n before_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n and_o teach_v they_o by_o practice_n what_o they_o be_v to_o do_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o what_o to_o believe_v but_o also_o prisilla_n and_o aquilla_n act._n 18._o 18._o apollo_n act._n 19_o 1._o stephanus_n fortunatus_n and_o achaicus_n be_v at_o corinth_n and_o instruct_v they_o by_o practice_n what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o what_o to_o believe_v before_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v as_o appear_v 1._o cor._n 16._o which_o consider_v and_o see_v that_o the_o corinthian_n even_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o their_o church_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o many_o counsel_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o can_v doubt_v whether_o s._n paul_n teach_v the_o corinthian_n and_o grecian_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o that_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o be_v deceive_v see_v that_o it_o be_v more_o hard_a and_o uncertain_a for_o man_n to_o gather_v and_o understand_v a_o thing_n deliver_v by_o a_o epistle_n only_o and_o that_o in_o this_o point_n brief_a and_o short_a then_o both_o by_o see_v it_o donn_v and_o practise_v many_o year_n and_o by_o a_o epistle_n also_o both_o together_o when_o a_o epistle_n only_o may_v with_o great_a facility_n be_v alter_v and_o change_v than_o a_o religion_n which_o be_v settle_v and_o establish_v in_o many_o city_n and_o province_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n chap._n iii_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o know_a christian-mens_n book_n who_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n sacrifice_n the_o scripture_n manifest_a for_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o s._n augustin_n speak_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o jew_n faith_fw-mi down_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o 6._o tom_n say_v unto_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o bear_v testimony_n of_o this_o clean_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n noth_z of_o your_o nation_n only_o from_o who_o hand_n he_o foretell_v that_o he_o will_v not_o receive_v but_o of_o all_o nation_n who_o say_v come_v let_v we_o ascend_v unto_o the_o mountain_n of_o god_n not_o in_o one_o place_n as_o it_o be_v command_v you_o in_o the_o earthly_a jerusalem_n but_o in_o every_o place_n even_o unto_o jerusalem_n it_o tyme._n sacrifice_n offer_v in_o every_o place_n in_o s._n augustine_n tyme._n self_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n preach_v unto_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n he_o say_v faithful_a man_n who_o have_v read_v the_o gospel_n do_v know_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n dilate_v over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n thus_o s._n augustine_n both_o unto_o the_o jew_n and_o faithful_a christian_n whereby_o we_o gather_v four_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o s._n augustine_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n speak_v plain_o and_o manifest_o enough_o of_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o new_a law_n second_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o s._n augustins_n time_n dilate_v over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o believe_v of_o all_o faithful_a man_n three_o christian_n why_o our_o adversary_n read_v scripture_n and_o find_v not_o sacrifice_n for_o christian_n that_o the_o cause_n why_o our_o adversary_n do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o use_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o for_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o sufficient_o speak_v of_o it_o but_o for_o that_o they_o be_v blind_v with_o obstinacy_n and_o obduration_n of_o heart_n with_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o though_o they_o read_v the_o bible_n every_o day_n and_o hear_v it_o read_v many_o time_n yet_o as_o our_o lord_n say_v see_v they_o see_v not_o and_o hear_v they_o hear_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o understand_v etc._n etc._n for_o their_o heart_n be_v waxen_a gross_a sacrifice_n the_o jews_n deny_v christian_a sacrifice_n matth._n 13._o 13._o foverthly_a our_o adversary_n in_o deny_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v take_v part_n with_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n against_o the_o faithful_a christian_n of_o all_o former_a age_n 2._o again_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o say_a oration_n against_o the_o jew_n say_v unto_o they_o as_o we_o in_o his_o word_n adversary_n s._n augustins_n speech_n to_o the_o jews_n apply_v to_o our_o adversary_n may_v say_v unto_o our_o adversary_n lest_o you_o shall_v think_v o_o jews_n because_o you_o do_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o that_o god_n will_v not_o receive_v sacrifice_n at_o your_o hand_n that_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n which_o he_o indeed_o do_v not_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o who_o want_v not_o any_o of_o our_o good_n yet_o that_o he_o be_v not_o without_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v not_o profitable_a unto_o he_o but_o unto_o you_o he_o add_v and_o faith_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o unto_o the_o go_v down_o my_o nane_fw-la be_v make_v famous_a in_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v offer_v a_o clean_a sacrifice_n unto_o my_o name_n for_o great_a be_v my_o name_n in_o the_o gentill_n say_v the_o lord_n omnipotent_a what_o will_v thou_o answer_v to_o this_o o_o jew_n open_v thy_o eye_n yet_o at_o last_o and_o see_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n to_o be_v offer_v from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_v down_o not_o in_o one_o place_n as_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o you_o but_o in_o all_o place_n not_o unto_o any_o god_n what_o soever_o but_o unto_o that_o god_n who_o foretell_v these_o thing_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n thus_o s._n augustine_n against_o the_o jew_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n dilate_v over_o the_o world_n in_o s._n augustins_n time_n not_o only_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o they_o do_v now_o but_o also_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v teach_v so_o to_o do_v by_o the_o sripture_n 3._o and_o not_o only_o in_o these_o book_n s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n offer_v lord_n s._n augustins_n often_o repetition_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o often_o in_o his_o other_o work_n he_o call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o 25._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n against_o cresconius_n say_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n itself_o and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o in_o 27._o chapter_n follow_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o chest_n and_o in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o his_o 22._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n he_o tell_v we_o how_o one_o of_o his_o neighbour_n hesperius_n by_o name_n a_o tribune_n find_v his_o cattle_n and_o servant_n to_o be_v molest_v by_o evil_a spirit_n come_v unto_o his_o priest_n in_o his_o absence_n and_o desire_v that_o some_o one_o of_o they_o will_v come_v thither_o and_o by_o his_o prayer_n dryve_v away_o these_o wicked_a spirit_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n expel_v wicked_a spirit_n spirit_n one_o go_v and_o offer_v there_o say_v s._n augustine_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n pray_v as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v that_o the_o
passion_n resurrection_n from_o hell_n and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n we_o do_v offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o immaculate_a host_n reasonable_a host_n unbloudy_a host_n this_o holy_a bread_n and_o chalice_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o beseech_v that_o thou_o will_v receive_v this_o oblation_n in_o thy_o high_a altar_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o thy_o angel_n as_o thou_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o thy_o child_n abel_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o patriarch_n abraham_n and_o that_o which_o the_o high_a priest_n melchisedech_n offer_v unto_o thou_o which_o word_n be_v also_o use_v in_o the_o in_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n even_o until_o this_o day_n 8._o s._n hierome_n who_o as_o we_o have_v place_v they_o be_v the_o six_o among_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n sacrament_n s._n hierome_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n church_n so_o constant_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o communion_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n against_o the_o pelagian_o he_o say_v christ_n have_v teach_v his_o apostle_n this_o that_o these_o who_o have_v daily_a confidence_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n may_v bold_o say_v our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n use_v even_o until_o this_o day_n in_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o titus_n a_o bishop_n be_v to_o offer_v pure_a victimes_o every_o day_n to_o god_n for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n against_o jovinian_a priest_n ought_v always_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o people_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n against_o vigilantius_n defend_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o as_o he_o say_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n over_o the_o venerable_a bone_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o his_o 150._o epistle_n moses_n have_v not_o give_v we_o true_a bread_n but_o our_o lord_n jesus_n he_o be_v the_o guest_n and_o the_o banquet_n he_o be_v he_o that_o eat_v and_o who_o be_v eat_v we_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o without_o he_o we_o can_v drink_v it_o and_o daily_o in_o his_o sacrifice_n we_o tread_v forth_o the_o new_a red_a wine_n of_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o of_o the_o viniard_a of_o sorac_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v choose_v and_o out_o of_o these_o we_o drink_v new_a wine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n upon_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n allude_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n he_o say_v the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v eat_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v bear_v in_o our_o village_n of_o bethlem_n where_o he_o sometime_o live_v a_o religious_a life_n in_o a_o monastery_n upon_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o sophonias_n priest_n serve_v the_o eucharist_n and_o distribute_v our_o lord_n blood_n to_o his_o people_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o heliodorus_n he_o say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v speak_v any_o sinister_a priest_n s._n hierome_n his_o respect_n to_o priest_n thing_n of_o those_o who_o succeed_v to_o the_o apostolical_a degree_n do_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o their_o holy_a mouth_n by_o who_o we_o also_o become_v christian_n again_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o euagrius_n he_o say_v at_o the_o prayer_n of_o bishopp_n and_o priest_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v which_o eminency_n and_o dignity_n of_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v the_o lamb_n without_o spott_n and_o the_o light_n of_o heaven_n so_o penetrate_v his_o heart_n that_o though_o a_o priest_n yet_o out_o of_o his_o profound_a humility_n s._n hieromes_n humility_n humility_n and_o venerable_a respect_n to_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n as_o be_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n will_v not_o venture_v to_o consecrate_v or_o offer_v christian_a sacrifice_n as_o witness_v s._n epiphanius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n translate_v out_o of_o greek_a into_o latin_a by_o s._n hierome_n himself_o and_o fett_v down_o both_o among_o s._n hieromes_n epistle_n and_o in_o s._n epiphanius_n his_o work_n where_o he_o say_v that_o after_o he_o have_v see_v that_o there_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o holy_a brother_n or_o friar_n gather_v together_o in_o a_o monastery_n and_o the_o holy_a priest_n hierome_n and_o vincent_n who_o live_v among_o they_o out_o of_o their_o modesty_n and_o humility_n will_v not_o exercise_v the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n due_a unto_o their_o function_n nor_o labour_n in_o this_o christian_n sacrifice_n the_o chief_a salvation_n of_o christian_n part_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a salvation_n of_o christian_n he_o ordain_v s._n hieromes_n brother_n a_o priest_n to_o supply_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o monastery_n for_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o further_o witness_v s._n hierome_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o theophilus_n against_o john_n of_o hierufalem_fw-la and_o epiphanius_n above_o cite_v 9_o by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o all_o the_o six_o aforesaid_a ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o only_o hold_v and_o teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o a_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o but_o also_o that_o this_o their_o opinion_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v without_o all_o controversy_n before_o all_o those_o doctor_n flourish_v optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la who_o write_v milevitanus_fw-la optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la of_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o heretical_a donatist_n against_o the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n consecrate_v by_o catholic_a priest_n say_v in_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o parmenianus_n that_o your_o aforesaid_a catholic_n the_o fury_n of_o the_o donatist_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o eucharist_n of_o catholic_n bishopp_n may_v violate_v all_o holy_a thing_n they_o command_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v cast_v unto_o dog_n not_o without_o a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o the_o same_o dog_n become_v mad_a with_o their_o tooth_n tear_v their_o master_n as_o thief_n and_o guilty_a of_o the_o holy_a body_n etc._n etc._n again_o in_o his_o 6._o book_n describe_v yet_o more_o at_o large_a the_o fury_n of_o these_o heretic_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n offer_v by_o catholic_n priest_n say_v what_o be_v so_o sacrilegious_a as_o to_o break_v raise_v or_o remove_v the_o altar_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o which_o you_o also_o sometime_o offer_v wpon_n which_o the_o vow_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v bear_v where_o almighty_a god_n be_v invocate_v where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v desire_v do_v descend_v from_o whence_o many_o take_v the_o pledge_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n the_o defence_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_v of_o resurrection_n etc._n etc._n for_o what_o be_v the_o altar_n but_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n all_o these_o thing_n your_o fury_n have_v either_o raise_v or_o break_v or_o remove_v etc._n etc._n what_o have_v christ_n offend_v you_o who_o body_n and_o blood_n do_v dwell_v there_o upon_o the_o altar_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n what_o have_v you_o offend_v against_o yourselves_o that_o you_o shall_v break_v these_o altar_n upon_o the_o which_o for_o many_o year_n before_o we_o you_o offer_v as_o we_o think_v holy_o while_o that_o you_o do_v wicked_o persecute_v our_o hand_n there_o where_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v dwell_v you_o strike_v your_o own_o whereby_o you_o imitate_v the_o jew_n they_o cast_v their_o hand_n on_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o you_o strike_v he_o upon_o the_o altar_n and_o afterwards_o this_o wicked_a deed_n be_v double_v while_o you_o break_v the_o chalice_n the_o bear_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o species_n you_o have_v turn_v into_o mass_n or_o lump_n provide_v merchandise_n for_o wicked_a fair_n thus_o optatus_n 10._o s._n cyprian_n live_v abond_n the_o year_n 240._o and_o sacrifice_n s._n cyprian_n his_o belief_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n he_o in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n prove_v against_o the_o aquarij_fw-la certain_a heretic_n who_o be_v in_o his_o time_n that_o jesus-christ_n our_o lord_n god_n be_v author_n and_o teacher_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o in_o his_o time_n be_v use_v and_o believe_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o there_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a and_o by_o the_o same_o place_n of_o
scripture_n which_o catholic_n at_o this_o day_n allege_v against_o the_o different_a opinion_n of_o their_o adversary_n add_v also_o in_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n epistle_n say_v who_o be_v more_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a god_n than_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n who_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o which_o melchisedech_n have_v offer_v that_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n to_o wit_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n again_o jesus-christ_n our_o lord_n god_n he_o be_v the_o chief_a priest_n of_o god_n the_o father_n he_o offer_v first_o himself_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o command_v that_o which_o he_o then_o do_v to_o be_v do_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o moreover_o he_o there_o say_v to_o the_o aquarian_a heretic_n who_o will_v only_o use_v water_n and_o no_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o chalice_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherewith_o chalice_n christ_n blood_n see_v in_o the_o chalice_n we_o be_v redeem_v and_o quicken_v can_v be_v see_v to_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n when_o wine_n whereby_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v be_v not_o put_v into_o the_o chalice_n and_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o s._n matthew_n in_o the_o 26._o chapter_n of_o his_o gospel_n add_v hereby_o we_o find_v that_o the_o chalice_n which_o our_o lord_n offer_v be_v mix_v and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v wine_n which_o he_o call_v his_o blood_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v blood_n it_o be_v first_o wine_n and_o after_o his_o blood_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o offer_v if_o there_o be_v no_o wine_n put_v into_o the_o chalice_n neither_o be_v our_o lord_n sacrifice_v celebrate_v with_o lawful_a sanctification_n unless_o our_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o passion_n wherein_o our_o saviour_n shed_v blood_n and_o water_n etc._n etc._n john_n 15._o 34._o again_o as_o with_o this_o common_a wine_n the_o mind_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n the_o spirit_n free_v and_o all_o sorrow_n christ._n christian_n drink_n the_o blood_n of_o christ._n banish_v so_o by_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o healthful_a cup_n we_o cast_v away_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o old_a man_n and_o do_v forget_v our_o former_a worldly_a conversation_n etc._n etc._n again_o how_o shall_v we_o shed_v our_o blood_n for_o christ_n who_o be_v ashamed_a to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ._n this_o and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o effect_n have_v s._n cyprian_n in_o one_o afore_o say_a epistle_n beside_o what_o he_o have_v disperse_v through_o his_o other_o work_n 11._o alexander_n the_o first_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 121._o and_o suffer_v a_o most_o cruel_a martyrdom_n for_o the_o faith_n in_o rome_n when_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n flourish_v among_o the_o roman_n as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v and_o he_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n repeat_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n add_v with_o such_o host_n god_n will_v be_v delight_v and_o please_v for_o nothing_o can_v be_v great_a in_o sacrifice_n then_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o oblation_n more_o to_o be_v desire_v then_o this_o for_o this_o exceed_v all_o oblation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o all_o thus_o s._n alexander_n 12._o s._n clement_n of_o who_o s._n paul_n make_v mention_v philippian_n 4._o 3._o in_o the_o 57_o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n say_v let_v the_o bishop_n pray_v in_o these_o word_n conserve_v o_o lord_n thy_o people_n safe_a and_o bless_v thy_o inheritance_n etc._n etc._n afterward_o let_v sacrifice_n be_v make_v all_o the_o people_n expect_v and_o pray_v insilence_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v donn_v let_v every_o order_n a_o part_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o precious_a blood_n approach_v in_o order_n with_o modesty_n and_o reverence_n as_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o king_n before_o they_o receive_v it_o thus_o these_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n institute_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o they_o prove_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o catholic_n alleadg_n at_o this_o day_n and_o all_o christian_a man_n book_n and_o work_n who_o have_v write_v of_o this_o subject_n be_v so_o conformable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o before_o cite_v father_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o our_o adversary_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v be_v not_o able_a to_o assign_v or_o bring_v forth_o any_o book_n write_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n which_o deni_v the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o only_a son_n among_o christian_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o know_a christian_n man_n book_n who_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n before_o luther_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n or_o enormish_n erroneous_a man_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n iv_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o other_o blessing_n be_v and_o may_v be_v obtain_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 1._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n which_o parliament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n like_o a_o pardon_n at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o parliament_n our_o lord_n offer_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o general_a pardon_n at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o parliament_n which_o be_v in_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o pardon_v all_o his_o majesty_n subject_n for_o the_o offence_n there_o in_o specify_v be_v they_o tenntymes_o more_o than_o they_o be_v yet_o actual_o it_o pardon_v not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o but_o those_o who_o use_v the_o mean_n which_o his_o majesty_n law_n require_v in_o that_o case_n for_o the_o apply_v his_o gracious_a general_a pardon_n unto_o themselves_o which_o be_v to_o sue_v out_o a_o write_v of_o pardon_n or_o the_o like_a so_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v in_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o redeem_v ten_o thousand_o world_n if_o there_o be_v or_o can_v be_v so_o many_o from_o everlasting_a pain_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n impose_v upon_o man_n for_o original_a and_o actual_a sin_n as_o wittness_v s._n john_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o propitiation_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o actual_o according_a to_o the_o common_a concourse_n of_o god_n it_o redeem_v not_o any_o one_o man_n from_o everlasting_a torment_n but_o those_o who_o use_v the_o mean_n to_o apply_v the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o themselves_o express_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o withness_v s._n paul_n say_v christ_n be_v make_v to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o cause_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n heb._n 5._o 9_o 2._o and_o among_o the_o many_o mean_n which_o almighty_a god_n have_v leave_v unto_o mankind_n to_o apply_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n unto_o we_o this_o be_v one_o the_o offering_n of_o a_o certain_a and_o particular_a external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n represent_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o passion_n of_o his_o son_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o our_o god_n and_o supreme_a sovereign_a lord_n and_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o say_a passion_n unto_o ourselves_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n or_o first_o plantation_n there_o of_o upon_o earth_n for_o abel_n no_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n job_n and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n offer_v particular_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o come_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o his_o passion_n who_o be_v presen_o promise_v upon_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n gen._n 3._o 5._o and_o in_o virtue_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n apoc._n 13._o 12._o whereupon_o s._n john_n say_v he_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n in_o his_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o tribe_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n apoc._n 5._o 9_o and_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o
any_o other_o act._n 4._o 14._o 3._o in_o proof_n here_o of_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o come_v abel_n offer_v a_o great_a host_n to_o god_n than_o cain_n by_o which_o justice_n abel_n by_o sacrifice_n obtain_v testimony_n of_o justice_n he_o obtain_v testimony_n that_o he_o be_v just_a heb._n 11._o no_o build_v a_o altar_n to_o our_o lord_n offer_a holocauste_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o our_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n and_o say_v i_o will_v no_o more_o curse_v the_o earth_n for_o man_n and_o god_n bless_v no_n &_o his_o son_n gen._n 8._o &_o 9_o job_n when_o the_o day_n blessing_n no_o by_o sacrifice_n obtain_v blessing_n of_o feast_v which_o his_o child_n make_v be_v past_a arise_v up_o early_o offer_v holocau_v for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o for_o he_o say_v lest_o my_o son_n have_v sin_v job._n 1._o our_o sin_n job_n offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n lord_n say_v to_o eliphaz_n the_o themanite_n my_o fury_n be_v wrath_n against_o thou_o and_o against_o thy_o two_o friend_n take_v therefore_o seven_o ox_n and_o seven_o ram_n and_o go_v to_o my_o servant_n job_n and_o offer_v holocauste_n for_o yourselves_o and_o my_o servant_n job_n shall_v pray_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o folly_n be_v not_o impute_v sin_n eliphaz_n by_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o you_o job_n 42._o in_o the_o write_a law_n god_n often_o command_v the_o priest_n and_o people_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n say_v if_o the_o multitude_n of_o israel_n be_v ignorant_a and_o through_o ignorance_n do_v that_o which_o be_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o our_o lod_n etc._n etc._n they_o shall_v offer_v for_o their_o sin_n a_o calf_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o priest_n pray_v for_o they_o our_o lord_n will_v be_v propitious_a unto_o they_o levit._fw-la 4._o 13._o if_o a_o prince_n sin_n through_o ignorance_n etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o host_n to_o our_o lord_n a_o buck_n of_o the_o goat_n without_o spot_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o priest_n shall_v pray_v for_o he_o and_o for_o his_o sin_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o and_o if_o a_o soul_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v sin_n through_o ignorance_n do_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n that_o by_o the_o law_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v forbid_v and_o offend_v etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o she_o goat_n without_o spot_n etc._n etc._n the_o priest_n shall_v pray_v for_o he_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o levit._fw-la 4._o 27._o and_o the_o like_a be_v say_v of_o many_o other_o sacrifice_n offer_v for_o sin_n in_o the_o 4._o 5._o and_o 6._o chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la which_o manner_n of_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n among_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n until_o this_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n 4._o at_o the_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o take_v away_o out_o of_o his_o church_n priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o such_o sin_n our_o saviour_n constitute_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n sort_n as_o that_o he_o will_v have_v no_o more_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n wcich_a he_o come_v to_o fulfil_v and_o not_o to_o break_v math._n 5._o but_o translate_v the_o priesthood_n from_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n unto_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n heb._n 7_o and_o change_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o brute_n beast_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o old_a law_n into_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o new_a law_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v priesthoop_n sacrifice_n and_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o sacrifice_n offer_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o when_o take_v bread_n he_o bless_v break_v and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o cor._n 11._o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o wittness_v origen_n in_o his_o 35._o tract_n upon_o s._n matthew_n s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o s._n matthew_n and_o s._n damascene_fw-la in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n orthodoxae_fw-la fidei_fw-la who_o all_o cite_n this_o text_n in_o the_o place_n aforesaid_a and_o there_o unto_o as_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v thereof_o and_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o put_v into_o the_o bible_n at_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n because_o they_o be_v annex_v unto_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o chalice_n math._n 26._o yet_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n have_v these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n thus_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v and_o give_v for_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n s._n mark_v in_o his_o liturgy_n read_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o distribute_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n s._n basil_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o the_o aethiopian_n in_o their_o liturgy_n read_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 5._o in_o like_a manner_n our_o saviour_n take_v the_o chalice_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v sin_n the_o chalice_n offer_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n drink_n you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n math._n 16._o and_o then_o offer_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o when_o he_o have_v donn_v he_o establish_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o give_n of_o his_o body_n and_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n unto_o god_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v this_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk._n 22._o and_o this_o do_v you_o as_o often_o you_o shall_v drink_v for_o the_o commemoraton_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o and_o so_o fullfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o establish_v in_o his_o church_n that_o one_o pure_a and_o clean_a oblation_n or_o host_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o place_n of_o the_o many_o and_o diverse_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n of_o moses_n 6._o and_o that_o this_o change_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v the_o better_o know_v change_v propitiatory_a sacrifice_n not_o take_v away_o but_o change_v our_o lord_n do_v not_o speak_v only_o once_o of_o it_o but_o diverse_a time_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o witness_v the_o liturgy_n before_o cite_v and_o s._n damascene_fw-la in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n orthodoxae_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o also_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n uhich_v shall_v be_v break_v or_o deliver_v for_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o witness_v origen_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v and_o this_o diversity_n of_o word_n our_o lord_n use_v command_v propitiatory_a sacrifice_n command_v to_o express_v that_o he_o both_o than_o break_v his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o also_o command_v that_o it_o and_o no_o other_o body_n shall_v be_v break_v to_o god_n for_o we_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o church_n and_o so_o make_v void_a all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o establish_v this_o of_o the_o new_a and_o therefore_o also_o he_o say_v of_o the_o chalice_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o witness_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a bibles_n for_o the_o greek_a bibles_n read_v these_o word_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o the_o latins_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n to_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o our_o lord_n then_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n
these_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v perfect_o fulfil_v may_v not_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o or_o like_a benefit_n especial_o see_v that_o it_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o all_o age_n as_o appeareth_z by_o all_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n of_o ancient_a time_n where_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o offer_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o god_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v set_v down_o not_o only_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o for_o the_o obtain_v those_o other_o particular_a blessing_n comfort_n and_o consolation_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o say_a book_n at_o large_a 12._o s._n augustine_n so_o constant_o believe_v this_o sacrifice_n s._n augustine_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o sacrifice_n doctrine_n that_o in_o his_o 57_o question_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la he_o say_v by_o these_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n this_o only_a sacrifice_n the_o new_a be_v signify_v wherein_o be_v true_a remission_n of_o sin_n from_o take_v the_o blood_n of_o which_o sacrament_n in_o nourrishment_n there_o be_v no_o restraint_n but_o rather_o a_o exhortation_n unto_o all_o to_o drink_v it_o and_o speak_v of_o the_o practice_n and_o use_v of_o this_o mean_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o the_o 9_o book_n of_o his_o confession_n say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v offer_v for_o his_o mother_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o her_o sin_n after_o her_o death_n and_o yield_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v offer_v for_o she_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n add_v all_o though_o she_o be_v so_o quicken_v and_o renew_v in_o christ_n whilst_o she_o remain_v yet_o among_o we_o that_o thy_o name_n be_v praise_v both_o in_o her_o belief_n and_o life_n yet_o i_o dare_v not_o affirm_v that_o after_o thou_o have_v regenerate_v she_o by_o her_o baptism_n there_o issue_v no_o word_n out_o of_o her_o mouth_n against_o thy_o commandment_n and_o in_o the_o 25._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o universal_a judgement_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a that_o some_o be_v purge_v by_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o judgement_n because_o then_o no_o man_n can_v offer_v sacrifice_n for_o his_o sin_n show_v that_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v not_o cease_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o then_o add_v say_v for_o all_o who_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v common_o in_o the_o sin_n for_o the_o remission_n whereof_o they_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o when_o they_o have_v offer_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n than_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v 13._o s._n cyprian_n live_v about_o the_o year_n 240._o yet_o sacrifice_n s._n cyprian_n and_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o sacrifice_n speak_v of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o his_o time_n in_o his_o 66._o epistle_n say_v the_o bishopp_n which_o be_v before_o we_o have_v religioussy_a and_o prudent_o decree_v that_o none_o of_o the_o brethren_n depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n shall_v name_v for_o his_o executor_n or_o overseer_n a_o clergy_n man_n and_o if_o any_o do_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o offering_n for_o he_o nor_o sacrifice_n celebrate_v for_o his_o ease_n or_o rest_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 121._o s._n alexander_n the_o first_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o he_o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n repeat_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n present_o add_v say_v crime_n and_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o by_o offer_v these_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o to_o conclude_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v so_o general_o believe_v to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o in_o the_o most_o flourish_a time_n of_o the_o church_n a●●ius_n be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v among_o other_o thing_n the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o wittness_v epiphanius_n in_o his_o recapitulation_n of_o all_o heresy_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 53._o heresy_n of_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n and_o s._n damascene_fw-la in_o his_o book_n of_o 100_o heresy_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o may_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o pain_n and_o punishment_n due_a unto_o some_o sin_n after_o death_n no_o man_n can_v with_o reason_n deny_v but_o that_o also_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o church_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o live_n 14._o and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o blessing_n sacrifice_n offer_v for_o other_o blessing_n sin_n but_o also_o for_o obtain_v of_o other_o benefit_n tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n to_o scapula_n say_v that_o in_o his_o time_n they_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o health_n of_o the_o emperor_n as_o we_o do_v many_o time_n for_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n charles_n his_o queen_n and_o child_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o 22._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n relate_v how_o one_o of_o his_o priest_n offer_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o a_o house_n that_o be_v possess_v with_o evil_a spirit_n and_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n cease_v to_o trouble_v the_o house_n any_o more_o 15._o s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 95._o psalm_n set_v down_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o sacrifice_n s._n chrysostome_n of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o offer_v sacrifice_n offer_v sacrifice_n say_v in_o every_o place_n be_v altar_n and_o doctrine_n this_o god_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n for_o express_v the_o ecclesiastical_a sincerity_n and_o manifest_v the_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n omnipotent_a neither_o will_v i_o receive_v host_n from_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rysi_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_v down_o my_o name_n be_v glorify_v among_o the_o gentill_n and_o in_o every_o place_n sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n and_o a_o pure_a sacrifice_n see_v how_o full_o and_o plain_o he_o have_v interpret_v the_o mystical_a table_n which_o be_v the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o call_v pure_a incense_n the_o holy_a prayer_n which_o be_v offer_v with_o the_o sacrifice_n for_o this_o incense_n do_v recreate_v god_n not_o that_o which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o root_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v breathe_v from_o a_o pure_a heart_n let_v my_o prayer_n therefore_o be_v deliver_v as_o incense_v in_o they_o sight_n do_v thou_o see_v how_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o this_o angelical_a sacrifice_n to_o shine_v most_o bright_o in_o every_o place_n do_v thou_o not_o see_v how_o neither_o the_o altar_n nor_o the_o canticle_n be_v comprehend_v within_o any_o limit_n in_o every_o place_n incense_n be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n therefore_o most_o certain_o the_o principal_a mystical_a table_n and_o the_o heavenly_a and_o the_o most_o venerable_a host_n be_v the_o pure_a sacrifice_n there_o be_v also_o among_o we_o diverse_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o law_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v diverse_a host_n some_o for_o sin_n other_o which_o be_v call_v holocauste_n other_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n other_o of_o health_n other_o for_o the_o cleanse_n of_o leper_n brief_o there_o be_v other_o and_o many_o and_o diverse_a for_o those_o who_o be_v censure_v to_o innumerable_a expiation_n great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o above_o measure_n all_o which_o the_o new_a grace_n enter_v upon_o do_v comprehend_v in_o one_o sacrifice_n by_o appoint_v one_o and_o a_o true_a host_n thus_o s._n chrysostome_n with_o s._n chrysostome_n agree_v s._n leo_n in_o his_o 8._o sermon_n upon_o the_o passion_n say_v now_o o_o lord_n the_o carnal_a sacrifice_n cease_v the_o one_o oblation_n of_o thy_o body_n and_o blood_n do_v fulfil_v the_o diversity_n
sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o establish_v the_o give_n of_o his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o add_v do_v this_o in_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o and_o so_o as_o s._n paul_n here_o say_v he_o take_v away_o all_o the_o former_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n to_o establish_v the_o give_n of_o his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v after_o they_o be_v abrogate_a or_o end_v 4._o though_o in_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v many_o sacrifice_n holocau_v oblation_n and_o host_n yet_o in_o the_o new_a law_n all_o the_o sacrifice_n oblation_n and_o host_n shall_v be_v but_o one_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o one_o body_n in_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n though_o offer_v in_o every_o place_n among_o the_o convert_a church_n one_o host_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n gentile_n as_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n which_o here_o also_o s._n paul_n further_a signifi_v say_v christ_n offer_v one_o host_n for_o sin_n for_o ever_o fit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o by_o one_o oblation_n have_v he_o consummate_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v show_v that_o in_o the_o new_a law_n there_o be_v not_o many_o host_n oblation_n or_o holocau_v to_o be_v offer_v but_o only_o one_o host_n the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v for_o we_o to_o god_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o upon_o the_o cross_n and_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o as_o s._n paul_n add_v until_o he_o come_v to_o judgement_n 1._o cor._n 11._o whereupon_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o priest_n he_o it_o be_v that_o offer_v and_o he_o be_v the_o oblation_n the_o oblation_n christ_n both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o oblation_n sacrament_n of_o which_o thing_n he_o will_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o he_o her_o head_n have_v learned_a to_o offer_v herself_o by_o he_o and_o of_o this_o sacrifice_n the_o many_o and_o diverse_a ancient_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v sign_n that_o whilst_o this_o one_o sacrifice_n be_v figure_v or_o set_v forth_o by_o many_o one_o thing_n may_v as_o it_o be_v be_v express_v by_o many_o word_n and_o be_v much_o commend_v without_o tediousness_n to_o this_o chief_a and_o true_a sacrifice_n all_o the_o false_a sacrifice_n have_v give_v place_n thus_o s._n augustin_n where_o the_o saint_n manifest_o and_o clear_o show_v that_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o oblation_n in_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o church_n succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o old_a law_n and_o that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n have_v learned_a to_o offer_v herself_o by_o he_o to_o god_n in_o this_o one_o and_o yet_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v teach_v at_o this_o day_n 5._o moreover_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o 17._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n recite_v this_o same_o place_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v before_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o 39_o psal_n say_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o table_n be_v to_o begin_v to_o live_v for_o in_o another_o book_n which_o be_v call_v ecclesiaste_n he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o good_a belong_v to_o man_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v which_o we_o may_v easy_o understand_v to_o belong_v unto_o the_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o table_n which_o the_o mediator_n himself_o or_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n do_v bring_v in_o of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o that_o sacrifice_n have_v succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o those_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o law._n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n succeed_v all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law._n be_v immolate_a in_o figure_n of_o this_o to_o come_v for_o which_o cause_n we_o also_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o voice_n of_o the_o same_o mediator_n speak_v by_o way_n of_o prophecy_n in_o the_o 39_o psalm_n sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o but_o a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o for_o in_o place_n of_o all_o these_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n his_o body_n be_v offer_v and_o administer_v to_o the_o communicant_n so_o s._n augustin_n where_o he_o show_v most_o plain_o that_o this_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n and_o deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n unto_o all_o the_o communicant_n again_o in_o his_o book_n upon_o the_o psalm_n expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o 39_o psal_n allege_v here_o by_o s._n paul_n he_o say_v sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o what_o sacrifice_n christian_n be_v not_o without_o sacrifice_n then_o be_v we_o therefore_o in_o this_o time_n send_v away_o with_o out_o sacrifice_n god_n forbid_v but_o a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o therefore_o thou_o will_v not_o the_o other_o that_o thou_o may_v perfect_v this_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o show_v that_o this_o body_n be_v that_o which_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o give_v in_o the_o communion_n add_v in_o this_o body_n we_o be_v of_o this_o body_n we_o be_v partaker_n that_o which_o we_o have_v receive_v we_o know_v and_o you_o that_o do_v not_o know_v shall_v know_v and_o when_o you_o have_v learn_v i_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o you_o may_v not_o take_v it_o to_o your_o condemnation_n for_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drinck_v unworthy_o eat_v and_o drinck_v judgement_n to_o himself_o so_o s._n augustin_n 6._o primasius_n bishop_n of_o utica_n in_o africa_n and_o a_o disciple_n of_o s._n august_n upon_o the_o 10._o to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o host_n be_v one_o and_o not_o many_o though_o it_o be_v offer_v up_o by_o many_o in_o diverse_a place_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n the_o divine_a power_n of_o the_o word_n time_n the_o sacrifice_n offer_v by_o many_o be_v one_o though_o offer_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n do_v make_v that_o there_o be_v not_o many_o sacrifice_n but_o one_o all_o though_o it_o be_v offer_v by_o many_o etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v there_o now_o one_o great_a sacrifice_n and_o a_o other_o lesser_a or_o one_o offer_v to_o day_n and_o another_o to_o morrow_n but_o always_o the_o selfsame_a have_v equal_a magnitude_n wherefore_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o not_o many_o for_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o because_o it_o be_v offer_v in_o many_o place_n there_o shall_v be_v many_o christ_n which_o god_n forbid_v one_o christ_n therefore_o be_v in_o all_o they_o places_z and_o as_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o be_v one_o body_n and_o not_o many_o body_n so_o also_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v one_o thus_o primasius_n 7._o and_o in_o like_a manner_n s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 10._o to_o the_o heb._n say_v the_o holy_a oblation_n by_o what_o priest_n soever_o it_o be_v offer_v be_v the_o self_n same_o which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n this_o have_v nothing_o less_o in_o it_o then_o that_o host_n all_o priest_n offer_v the_o same_o oblation_n or_o host_n have_v because_o man_n do_v not_o sanctify_v it_o but_o christ_n himself_o who_o before_o have_v consecrate_v that_o and_o in_o his_o 24._o hom._n upon_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n speak_v of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n say_v this_o body_n when_o it_o be_v place_v in_o the_o manger_n be_v reverence_v magi._n the_o same_o body_n upon_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v in_o the_o manger_n and_o adore_v by_o the_o magi._n by_o the_o magi_n who_o though_o wicked_a and_o barbarous_a man_n by_o nation_n yet_o leave_v their_o country_n and_o home_n and_o undertake_v a_o long_a voyage_n and_o when_o they_o come_v they_o adore_v with_o great_a fear_n and_o tremble_v let_v we_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n imitate_v at_o least_o these_o barbarous_a people_n for_o they_o though_o they_o see_v he_o in_o a_o manger_n and_o in_o a_o cottage_n and_o not_o in_o such_o state_n as_o thou_o see_v he_o now_o yet_o they_o approach_v unto_o he_o wit_n great_a reverence_n and_o thou_o do_v not_o see_v he_o in_o a_o manger_n but_o upon_o
not_o upon_o the_o cross_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o now_o and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o to_o god_n in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o whereupon_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 24._o homily_n upon_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v to_o the_o communicant_n in_o the_o holy_a communion_n thou_o be_v not_o nourrish_v of_o one_o body_n and_o he_o of_o a_o other_o but_o we_o be_v all_o nourrish_v of_o the_o same_o body_n one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a communion_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n by_o the_o will_n and_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n 11._o somme_n also_o of_o the_o greek_n father_n allege_v tense_n some_o greeck_n father_n read_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o both_o tense_n these_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o and_o yet_o also_o understand_v thereby_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o all_o christian_a sacrifice_n and_o be_v administrate_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o all_o the_o communicant_n as_o s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 180._o in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n s._n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 250._o in_o his_o answer_n unto_o the_o objection_n of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la a_o heretic_n set_v down_o in_o the_o 3._o tom_n of_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la theodoret_n upon_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o 11._o chapter_n s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 83._o homily_n upon_o s._n matthew_n etc._n etc._n 12._o the_o latin_a bibles_n more_o manifest_o to_o demonstrate_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n speak_v diverse_a time_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o the_o same_o his_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n sense_n the_o latin_n read_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o both_o sense_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n read_v those_o word_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o both_o tense_n and_o say_v of_o the_o body_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o 10._o luk_n 22._o and_o also_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o this_o do_v you_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o plain_o and_o manifest_o to_o show_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n both_o be_v then_o give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o shall_v at_o all_o time_n be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o when_o we_o make_v commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n 13._o so_o likewise_o the_o greek_n in_o their_o bibles_n sacrament_n no_o contradiction_n between_v the_o greek_n and_o latin_a bibles_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n read_v always_o these_o word_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o chalice_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o the_o latin_n without_o contradict_v or_o gain_n say_v what_o the_o greek_n read_v do_v always_o read_v they_o in_o their_o bible_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n math._n 26._o mark_n 14._o luk._n 22._o manifest_o to_o declare_v unto_o all_o christian_n that_o the_o same_o substantial_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v shed_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o same_o substantial_a blood_n shall_v also_o be_v shed_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o all_o the_o commemoration_n which_o we_o shall_v right_o make_v of_o he_o because_o god_n speak_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a blood_n say_v so_o 14._o when_o our_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o commemoration_n and_o when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o and_z this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o commemoration_n which_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n shall_v make_v of_o he_o in_o his_o church_n and_o so_o give_v a_o command_n not_o only_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n shall_v break_v and_o shed_v the_o same_o his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o the_o commemoration_n blood_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nothing_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n or_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o they_o be_v to_o make_v of_o he_o but_o also_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o break_v or_o shed_v any_o other_o body_n or_o blood_n but_o he_o in_o the_o commemoration_n which_o they_o be_v to_o make_v of_o he_o and_o so_o make_v a_o law_n that_o only_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n and_o nothing_o else_o and_o abrogate_a the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o establish_v a_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n in_o his_o church_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n decree_v in_o their_o 3._o canon_n say_v if_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n contrary_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v offer_v any_o thing_n upon_o a_o altar_n as_o honey_n milk_n or_o cider_n instead_o of_o wine_n or_o any_o compound_a thing_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o bird_n or_o beast_n or_o bean_n or_o pease_n transgress_v our_o lord_n constitution_n let_v he_o be_v degrade_v 15._o the_o old_a law_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o new_a where_o jesus_n be_v make_v a_o surety_n to_o a_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7._o 22._o whereupon_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o perform_v this_o hope_n and_o better_a testament_n change_v all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n which_o be_v law._n christ_n change_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law._n in_o sheep_n bullock_n bird_n etc._n etc._n into_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o say_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o also_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o most_o plain_o and_o manifest_o to_o express_v the_o change_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n into_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o declare_v his_o prohibition_n to_o offer_v any_o thing_n in_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o to_o prohibit_v the_o offering_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o then_o offer_v or_o give_v to_o god_n whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 17._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o those_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n for_o all_o those_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n christ_n body_n be_v offer_v and_o administrate_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o communicant_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n he_o say_v in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n but_o afterward_o christ_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o like_a have_v s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n to_o cicilianus_fw-la s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o sacrament_n s._n hierome_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 17._o epistle_n and_o in_o his_o 126._o epistle_n s._n ephanius_n in_o his_o 55._o heresy_n theodoret_n upon_o the_o 109._o psalm_n s._n leo_n in_o his_o 8._o sermon_n upon_o the_o passion_n and_o s._n
his_o word_n it_o be_v so_o donn_v and_o the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o green_a herb_n such_o as_o see_v according_a to_o his_o kind_n and_o tree_n that_o bear_v fruit_n and_o shall_v do_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n even_o so_o in_o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n our_o saviour_n take_v bread_n bless_a and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o and_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n word_n the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n right_o ordain_v receive_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o give_v his_o body_n even_o that_o which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o we_o and_o shall_v have_v power_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o do_v with_o the_o light_n to_o shine_v and_o the_o earth_n to_o shoot_v forth_o green_a herb_n and_o tree_n 3._o s._n justine_n martyr_n who_o live_v with_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n and_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n sacrament_n s._n justine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n time_n in_o his_o 2._o apology_n which_o he_o make_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n unto_o antoninus_n pius_fw-la the_o emperor_n senate_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n declare_v unto_o we_o what_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o these_o primitive_a day_n in_o this_o point_n say_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v make_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n by_o the_o word_n of_o prayer_n proceed_v from_o he_o at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o in_o their_o commentary_n which_o be_v call_v their_o ghospell_n have_v relate_v unto_o we_o that_o jesus_n have_v ordain_v they_o to_o do_v so_o that_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o make_v it_o the_o eucharist_n he_o say_v do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o take_v likewise_o the_o chalice_n and_o make_v it_o the_o eucharist_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n thus_o s._n justine_n where_o he_o show_v that_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o church_n the_o faithful_a believe_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v make_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n and_o prayer_n speak_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o chief_a agent_n in_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o in_o the_o consecration_n thereof_o 4._o s._n irenaeus_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o heresy_n say_v when_o the_o mix_a chalice_n and_o the_o bread_n break_v do_v perceive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o body_n presence_n how_o constant_o in_o s._n irenaeus_n time_n they_o believe_v in_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n thus_o s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v with_o s._n polycarpe_n scholar_n to_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n and_o in_o his_o time_n when_o as_o yet_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n be_v live_v and_o the_o action_n of_o our_o saviwere_n fresh_a in_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n the_o reality_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o universal_o and_o constant_o believe_v to_o be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n or_o eucharist_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o only_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o his_o word_n that_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n cap._n 34._o he_o allege_v against_o certain_a heretic_n who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o real_a be_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o eucharist_n by_o his_o word_n to_o prove_v thereby_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n who_o by_o his_o word_n can_v effect_v it_o and_o make_v good_a what_o he_o say_v which_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o do_v unless_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v how_o will_v it_o be_v manifest_a to_o these_o heretic_n that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o the_o bread_n upon_o which_o thanks_n be_v give_v be_v the_o body_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o the_o chalice_n his_o blood_n if_o they_o do_v not_o say_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o builder_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o word_n by_o which_o tree_n bear_v fruit_n fountain_n flow_v the_o earth_n first_o do_v give_v the_o blade_n afterward_o the_o ear_n and_o then_o full_a wheat_n in_o the_o ear_n again_o how_o do_v they_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n do_v come_v to_o corruption_n and_o not_o receive_v life_n which_o be_v nourrish_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n therefore_o either_o let_v they_o change_v their_o opinion_n or_o abstain_v from_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v before_o speak_v of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o opinion_n who_o hold_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v consonant_n to_o the_o eucharist_n and_o again_o the_o eucharist_n confirm_v our_o opinion_n for_o we_o offer_v unto_o he_o sacrifice_n these_o thing_n which_o be_v his_o preach_v agreable_o bread_n the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n word_n work_v the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n the_o communication_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n for_o even_o as_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n receive_v the_o vocation_n of_o god_n be_v now_o no_o more_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o earthly_a and_o the_o heavenly_a so_o also_o our_o body_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v now_o no_o more_o corruptible_a have_v hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o s._n irenaeus_n where_o we_o see_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o catholics_n do_v so_o little_a doubt_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o word_n that_o they_o urge_v it_o to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v it_o as_o a_o consonant_a opinion_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o word_n and_o again_o that_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 5._o in_o the_o like_a manner_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o succeed_a age_n affirm_v that_o the_o body_n god_n s._n cyprian_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n as_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v not_o change_v in_o outward_a form_n or_o shape_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v make_v flesh_n as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o humanity_n be_v see_v and_o the_o divinity_n lie_v hide_v so_o after_o a_o unspeakable_a manner_n the_o divine_a essence_n do_v pour_v itself_o into_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n that_o man_n may_v use_v a_o religious_a devotion_n about_o the_o sacrament_n and_o may_v have_v a_o more_o simple_a or_o sincere_a access_n unto_o the_o truth_n even_o unto_o the_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o sacrament_n be_v 6._o eusebius_n cesariensis_n live_v in_o the_o year_n 320._o god_n eusebius_n of_o the_o change_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o he_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 3._o book_n and_o 45._o chapter_n of_o the_o pararell_n of_o damasus_n say_v many_o priest_n while_o they_o be_v in_o sin_n do_v work_v the_o holy_a thing_n or_o offer_v sacrifice_n neither_o do_v god_n turn_v away_o from_o they_o but_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n do_v consecrate_v the_o gift_n set_v before_o they_o and_o bread_n certain_o be_v make_v the_o precious_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n the_o precious_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n bread_n s._n cyrill_n how_o christ_n work_v the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n 7._o s._n cyrill_a of_o jerusalem_n live_v in_o the_o year_n 370._o and_o he_o in_o his_o 4._o mystagogica_fw-la say_v see_v that_o christ_n himself_o do_v say_v and_o affirm_v after_o this_o manner_n of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n who_o ever_o hereafter_o dare_v doubt_n and_o he_o likewise_o
say_v and_o affirm_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n who_o i_o say_v cann_v doubt_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o blood_n heretofore_o at_o cana_n in_o galilea_n only_o by_o his_o will_n he_o change_v water_n into_o wine_n which_o be_v near_o unto_o blood_n and_o be_v he_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v that_o have_v change_v wine_n into_o his_o blood_n he_o be_v invite_v to_o a_o corporal_a marriage_n wrought_v a_o wonderful_a miracle_n shall_v we_o not_o much_o more_o easy_o confess_v that_o he_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o child_n of_o his_o spouse_n wherefore_o with_o assuredness_n let_v we_o take_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n the_o body_n be_v give_v thou_o and_o under_o the_o species_n of_o wine_n the_o blood_n be_v give_v that_o have_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n thou_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o shall_v be_v bearer_n of_o christ_n after_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n into_o our_o membre_n 8._o s._n gregory_n nissen_n brother_n to_o s._n basile_n the_o great_a god_n s._n gregory_n nissen_n of_o the_o change_n in_o in_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n live_v in_o in_o the_o year_n 380._o and_o he_o in_o his_o 37._o oration_n catechetica_fw-la say_v as_o christ_n by_o eat_v bread_n make_v it_o be_v divine_a body_n so_o likewise_o here_o bread_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v and_o not_o by_o eat_v and_o drink_v become_v the_o body_n of_o the_o word_n change_v by_o the_o word_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 9_o s._n ambrose_n who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 370._o in_o word_n s._n ambrose_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n word_n the_o 9_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n of_o those_o who_o be_v begunn_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o mystery_n say_v if_o human_a blessing_n of_o moses_n elias_n and_o elizaeus_n be_v of_o such_o force_n as_o that_o it_o can_v alter_v nature_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o divine_a consecration_n where_o the_o word_n themselves_o of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n do_v work_v for_o this_o sacrament_n which_o thou_o do_v receive_v be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n if_o the_o word_n of_o elias_n be_v of_o such_o force_n that_o they_o can_v call_v fire_n from_o heaven_n shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v sufficient_a to_o change_v the_o species_n of_o the_o element_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o world_n thou_o have_v read_v that_o because_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v therefore_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v make_v of_o nothing_o that_o which_o be_v not_o cann_v it_o not_o change_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v into_o that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o for_o the_o difficulty_n be_v not_o lesser_a to_o give_v new_a nature_n to_o thing_n then_o to_o change_v nature_n again_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n and_o 4._o chapter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n he_o say_v this_o bread_n be_v bread_n before_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o assoon_o as_o consecration_n be_v add_v unto_o it_o of_o bread_n it_o be_v make_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ._n this_o we_o affirm_v how_o cann_v that_o which_o be_v bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o consecration_n and_o with_o what_o word_n and_o speech_n be_v consecration_n with_o the_o word_n of_o our_o jesus_n for_o in_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v say_v praise_n be_v give_v unto_o god_n prayer_n be_v make_v for_o the_o people_n for_o king_n etc._n etc._n but_o when_o we_o come_v that_o the_o venerable_a sacrament_n shall_v be_v make_v than_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o use_v his_o own_o word_n but_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v work_v this_o sacrament_n what_o word_n of_o christ_n even_o that_o by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v our_o lord_n command_v and_o the_o sea_n be_v make_v our_o lord_n command_v and_o all_o creature_n be_v beget_v if_o therefore_o there_o be_v so_o great_a force_n in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n that_o these_o thing_n can_v begin_v to_o be_v which_o be_v not_o how_o much_o more_o will_v they_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v that_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v which_o be_v and_o be_v change_v in_o a_o other_o but_o hear_v the_o prophet_n say_v he_o say_v and_o they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v therefore_o that_o i_o may_v answer_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n before_o consecration_n but_o after_o consecration_n i_o tell_v thou_o that_o then_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o upon_o the_o 38._o psalm_n he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o consecrate_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v thus_o s._n ambrose_n 10._o in_o like_a manner_n s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o homily_n god_n s._n chrisostome_n of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o proditione_n judae_fw-la say_v it_o be_v not_o man_n that_o do_v make_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v expose_v for_o consecration_n upon_o the_o table_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o who_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o christ_n the_o word_n be_v pronounce_v with_o the_o priest_n mouth_n and_o they_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n by_o these_o word_n the_o thing_n expose_v be_v consecrate_v and_o as_o that_o voice_n which_o say_v increase_n and_o multiply_v and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n be_v say_v but_o once_o yet_o at_o all_o time_n have_v this_o effect_n for_o generation_n nature_n concur_v so_o this_o word_n but_o once_o say_v and_o yet_o it_o give_v strength_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v upon_o all_o the_o table_n of_o the_o church_n even_o until_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v do_v until_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n again_o in_o his_o 83._o homily_n upon_o the_o s._n matthew_n he_o say_v we_o bishopp_n or_o priest_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n hold_v but_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n minister_n for_o he_o who_o do_v santify_v or_o make_v the_o change_n be_v christ_n himself_o thus_o s._n chrisostome_n 11._o s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o galatian_n say_v although_o some_o think_v i_o worthy_a of_o reprehension_n change_n s._n hierome_n of_o this_o change_n for_o that_o in_o my_o book_n which_o i_o write_v of_o the_o preservation_n of_o virginity_n young_a woman_n ought_v to_o fly_v from_o wine_n as_o they_o do_v from_o poison_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o repent_v i_o of_o what_o i_o say_v for_o i_o rather_o contemn_v the_o effect_n or_o work_v of_o wine_n than_o the_o creature_n itself_o and_o i_o take_v liberty_n to_o give_v this_o counsel_n unto_o a_o virgin_n warm_a with_o a_o heat_n proper_a unto_o her_o year_n lest_o upon_o occasion_n of_o drink_v a_o little_a she_o may_v drink_v much_o and_o perish_v otherwise_o i_o do_v know_v that_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v into_o christ_n his_o blood_n thus_o s._n hierome_n 12._o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 4._o chapter_n god_n s._n augustine_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la say_v we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o articulate_a word_n pronounce_v with_o the_o tongue_n or_o the_o sign_n of_o letter_n write_v in_o skin_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o only_a which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v consecrate_v by_o mystical_a prayer_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o sanctify_v that_o it_o may_v be_v so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v invisible_o see_v that_o god_n do_v work_v all_o the_o thing_n which_o by_o corporal_a motion_n be_v make_v in_o that_o work_n 13._o again_o in_o his_o book_n of_o sentence_n ad_fw-la prosperum_fw-la cite_v by_o gratian_n in_o his_o 2._o distinction_n he_o say_v in_o the_o species_n of_o wine_n and_o bread_n which_o we_o see_v we_o do_v honour_n invisible_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v flesh_n and_o blood_n neither_o do_v we_o equal_o esteem_v of_o these_o two_o species_n after_o consecration_n as_o before_o consecration_n for_o before_o consecration_n we_o faithful_o confeffe_n that_o they_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n as_o nature_n have_v form_v they_o but_o after_o consecration_n they_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o blessing_n have_v consecrate_v god_n s._n cyrillus_n alex._n
the_o son_n of_o mann_n and_o do_v not_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o you_o ought_v to_o communicate_v after_o such_o asort_n to_o the_o holy_a table_n as_o that_o you_o doubt_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o be_v take_v by_o the_o mouth_n which_o be_v believe_v by_o faith_n and_o in_o vain_a do_v these_o answer_n amen_o who_o dispute_v against_o that_o which_o be_v take_v thus_o s._n leo._n 14._o this_o custom_n of_o answer_v amen_o to_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o universal_o practise_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o cornelius_n who_o be_v a_o holy_a martyr_n and_o make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n 254._o amen_o novatus_fw-la the_o heretik_a change_v the_o answer_v of_o amen_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o fabius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n set_v down_o by_o eusebius_n in_o the_o 35._o chaper_fw-fr of_o his_o 6._o book_n of_o history_n among_o other_o thing_n accuse_v novatus_fw-la a_o archheretic_n of_o a_o most_o grievous_a offence_n for_o that_o when_o he_o have_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o shall_v distribute_v unto_o every_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o will_v take_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o communicant_n between_o both_o his_o hand_n and_o will_v not_o let_v they_o go_v until_o he_o have_v bind_v the_o communicant_a with_o this_o oath_n swear_v unto_o i_o by_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n that_o thou_o will_v never_o forsake_v i_o nor_o return_v to_o cornelius_n and_o the_o miserable_a man_n say_v s._n cornelius_n who_o be_v to_o receive_v do_v not_o taste_v of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n before_o he_o have_v bind_v himself_o unto_o he_o after_o this_o manner_n and_o he_o who_o shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n say_v this_o in_o lieu_n of_o amen_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v say_v i_o will_v from_o this_o time_n forward_o no_o more_o return_n to_o cornelius_n thus_o s._n cornelius_n in_o decipher_n the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heretic_n novatus_fw-la whereby_o we_o see_v that_o even_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n both_o the_o eucharist_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o receive_v and_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n use_v to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o receive_v 15._o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 29._o sermon_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v also_o mention_v of_o this_o testimony_n which_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v ever_o give_v to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v say_v you_o know_v o_o faithful_a man_n what_o testimony_n you_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o blood_n which_o you_o have_v receive_v for_o certain_o you_o say_v amen_n whereupon_o abel_n the_o answer_v of_o amen_o cry_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n like_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o faustus_n a_o manichean_a heretic_n who_o contemn_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n compare_v the_o cry_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o answer_n amen_o unto_o it_o before_o they_o receive_v it_o unto_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n which_o be_v shed_v upon_o earth_n by_o his_o brother_n cain_n say_v god_n say_v to_o cain_n what_o have_v thou_o donn_v the_o voice_n of_o thy_o brother_n blood_n cry_v unto_o i_o from_o the_o earth_n even_o so_o the_o divine_a voice_n in_o the_o scripture_n say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n do_v reprehend_v the_o jew_n for_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v aloud_o voice_n upon_o earth_n when_o amen_o be_v answer_v unto_o it_o by_o all_o nation_n at_o their_o receive_n of_o it_o this_o of_o amen_o be_v the_o clear_a or_o manifest_a voice_n of_o the_o blood_n which_o the_o blood_n itself_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a redeem_v by_o the_o same_o blood_n do_v express_v thus_o s._n augustine_n who_o word_n we_o may_v use_v word_n for_o word_n against_o our_o adversary_n change_v only_o jew_n for_o puritan_n 16._o wherefore_o i_o humble_o beseech_v the_o reader_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o shall_v read_v these_o our_o book_n and_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n serious_o to_o consider_v with_o thyself_o in_o what_o a_o lamentable_a and_o miserable_a estate_n thou_o live_v see_v that_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v not_o only_o all_o faithful_a people_n who_o ever_o receive_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n cry_v against_o thou_o as_o guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o also_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n itself_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v receive_v even_o as_o do_v the_o blood_n of_o abel_n against_o his_o brothe_n cain_n and_o have_v compassion_n of_o thyself_o yet_o while_o there_o be_v time_n let_v not_o thy_o sense_n deceive_v thou_o nor_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o thy_o will_n hinder_v thou_o nor_o yet_o sloth_n or_o negligence_n so_o lull_v thou_o a_o sleep_n that_o thou_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o cry_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n and_o nation_n if_o life_n please_v thou_o do_v not_o contemn_v life_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o thou_o in_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n but_o prepare_v thy_o heart_n to_o receive_v it_o worthy_o that_o thou_o may_v live_v eternal_o amen_n the_o table_n of_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n chap._n i._n what_o we_o understand_v by_o visible_a sacrifice_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o this_o book_n chap._n ii_o the_o necessity_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o end_n or_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o use_v chap._n iii_o all_o the_o gentile_n and_o heathen_a people_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o their_o suppose_a go_n chap._n iu._n of_o all_o the_o visible_a outward_a action_n of_o man_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v chief_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n chap._n v._n of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n of_o man_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n alone_o chap._n vi_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n all_o people_n who_o firm_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o his_o providence_n over_o mankind_n offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a chap._n vii_o how_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o end_n chap._n viii_o the_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o take_v away_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o establish_v it_o in_o better_a term_n chap._n ix_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o chief_a priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n chap._n x._o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o upon_o altar_n among_o the_o convert_a gentile_n chap._n xi_o by_o the_o distinction_n of_o bloody_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n be_v prove_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n chap._n xii_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o high_a church_n chap._n xiii_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n before_o luther_n believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v they_o in_o his_o church_n chap._n fourteen_o the_o conclusion_n the_o chapter_n of_o the_o 2._o book_n chap._n i._n our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o chap._n ii_o how_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o import_v also_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n chap._n iii_o the_o scripture_n and_o know_v christian_a man_n book_n who_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n iu._n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o other_o blessing_n be_v and_o may_v be_v obtain_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n v._n our_o saviour_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o give_v and_o shed_v and_o how_o all_o the_o host_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n or_o give_v in_o the_o communion_n be_v one_o chap._n vi_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n at_o the_o same_o tyme._n chap._n vii_o our_o saviour_n be_v chief_a priest_n or_o agent_n in_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o administratr_v sacrament_n chap._n viii_o how_o in_o general_a our_o saviour_n by_o his_o omnipotency_n together_o with_o priest_n his_o instrument_n and_o legate_n do_v consecrate_v his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n after_o consecration_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n chap._n x._o the_o amen_o or_o conclusion_n of_o this_o book_n and_o how_o all_o faithful_a communicant_n have_v use_v to_o say_v amen_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n before_o they_o receive_v finis_fw-la approbatio_fw-la tractatus_fw-la hic_fw-la secundus_fw-la de_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la nihil_fw-la continet_fw-la quod_fw-la aut_fw-la rectae_fw-la fidei_fw-la aut_fw-la bonis_fw-la moribus_fw-la repugnet_fw-la imprimi_fw-la itaque_fw-la poterit_fw-la &_o diwlgari_fw-la datum_n bruxell_n die_v 15._o maij_fw-la 1637._o henricus_fw-la calaenus_n s._n t._n l._n librorum_fw-la censor_n